Sayingsofjewis 00 Tayl
Sayingsofjewis 00 Tayl
Sayingsofjewis 00 Tayl
g_^
Bute
..-;:;:
,_yy.v:..-
.-,
'/\-,.-y-Ay-.<y-.'r''>:;:^:-yy^'^:V^-^'^''^'^y>^'
^rrsenteh to
Site ^ibrarg
Pntliersitg of 9Ioronto
fag
http://www.archive.org/details/sayingsofjewisOOtayl
CATALOGUE OF
WORKS
PUBLISHED FOR THE SYNDICS
OF THE
c.
GLASGOW:
CambrtUgr
j.
263,
Argyle Street.
ILetpjig:
CO.
"
PUBLICATIONS OF
Cambnlige
Cl)e
2am'bersiitp
pres^e*
of the
Au-
ihen^m.
criticism,
j-
ir ^7
r>
j
Alethoatst
Recorder.
.<
itn-u-
ui
.
r
1 his noble
i^oo pages 16 in
quarto
j-.
.
^u cof over
j
ui- u ..
">' "?"' worthy of editor and publishers
,
J
imconiunction with ahakspeare, and in an
measurable degree more than he. fixed the
language beyond any possibility of important
change. Thus the recent contributions to the
literature of the subject, by such workers as
Mr Francis Fry and Canon Westcott, appeal
to a wide range of sympathies; and to these
may now be added Dr Scrivener, well known
for his labours in the cause of the Greek Testament
ru
Yromtnc
"
editor's fame,
form."
BIBLE.
Student's
Edition, on good writing paper, with one column of print and wide
margin to each page for MS. notes. This edition will be found of
great use to those who are engaged in the task of Biblical criticism.
Two Vols. Crown 4to. gilt. 31 r ^d.
THE LECTIONARY
divided
Lessons
London
BIBLE,
WITH APOCRYPHA,
C. J.
ECCLESIAE
BREVIARIUM AD USUM INSIGNIS
pro Claudio Chevallon
SARUM
liWy.
*"S^^^f"eh
cum ordinario
^--^^^-^^^^f\^-^^^ qu?continentur PSALTERIUM,
Com^
hebdomadae juxta Horas Canonicas et propno
COMMUNE SANCTORUM, ORDINARIUM MISSAE
Officii totius
pletorii,
LITANIA,
Anglican
persons interested in the history- of the
grateful to the
feook of Common Prayer, will be
for^V^rdl^the^ptuc^ftLn^rthe^^If^
Demv
\^s.
8vo.
"''j^ '^^^'^"'^'^^"^
P-^^^^^^^^^
all
interesting."-CW.
has
which bears the above title and which
auspices.
recently appeared under theu-
''pff^^^.^.
^^^f^:::^:tas wonhHy^t^
|nji-Jig^.at_they
which
will fit^t
f-^^--- ;
t>^
- -^ -^
f^f
Ju.t.y
CO^tinemr PROPRIUM
accentuano.
quod et sanctorale dicitur, una cum
FASCICULI I. II. III. complete, 2. 2S.
^^^^^^
SANCTORUM
Demy
8vo.
5^.
a Francisco Cardinal:
recognitum iuxta editionem Venetns a.d. 1535
BREVIARIUM ROMANUM
OriGNONiO editum
et
^ZSum
TESTAMENT, m para lei
GREEK AND ENGLISH
Scholefield M.A
Edited by
page.
J.
on the same
the J^Iarginal References as
Small Oaavo. New Edition, with
6d.
Cloth, red edges.
7^armneed and revised bv Dr Scrivener.
^Columns
Authorised
Edited by F. H. A. bCRIVENER, ivi./i.,
I2j
Morocco boards or limp
6j.
5vo.
I
LL D Crown
the Vmvers.tus of
Revised Version is the Joint Property of
nr
rt
AND
THE'pAf AtlEf NEW TESTAMENT GREEK
ra-'
coit
s^^-t
tot.
'^L^^j^p^f^^
and Oxjora.
Property of the Utiiversities of Cambridge
London:
J.
Clay S^
Warehouse,
Sons, CarnbridgTuniversity Press
Ave Marta
Lane.
PUBLICATIONS OF
GREEK ACCORDING
IN
Press.
TO THE SEPTUAGINT.
Volume
By
II.
the
same
[/ the
Editor.
Js. 6d.
point in English exegesis of the Old Testament; indeed, even Dehtzsch, whose pride it
is to leave no source of illustration unexplored,
is
far inferior
on
this
Academy, Septic,
Dr
head to
Plumptre.
1881
MATTHEW in
THE GOSPEL ACCORDING TO STsynoptically
arranged:
.
los.
4to.
uniform
los.
uniform
los.
by
it is
M.
uniform
los.
ticular
Edited for
menced by
4to.
Kemble, some forty years ago. Of the parvolume now before us, we can only say
worthy of its two predecessors. We repeat
that the service rendered to the study of AngloSaxon by this Synoptic collection cannot easily
he oveniAted." Contemporary Review.
Demy
Common
The same
Qd.
Choirs and
Specially adapted for Congregations in which the " Cambridge Pointed Prayer Book" is used. Demy 8vo. cloth extra, y. 6d.
2s. 6d.
cloth limp, cut flush.
Organists.
and learning that those acquainted with the works of the Regius Professor of
Divinity at Cambridge would expect to find,
care, thought,
as a
THE MISSING FRAGMENT OF THE LATIN TRANSLATION OF THE FOURTH BOOK OF EZRA,
discovered,
Demy
Arabic.
4to.
los.
"It has been said of this book that it has
added a new chapter to the Bible, and. startling
as the statement
may
fact, if
Bible
we understand
it is
by the
plates.
London
Demy
C. y.
4to.
By
J.
With
loj. 6d.
CODEX
CEADDAE LATINUS.
S.
Evangelia SSS.
Matthaei, Maici, Lucae ad cap. III. 9 complectens, circa septimum
vel octavum saeculum scriptvs, in Ecclesia Cathedrali Lichfieldiensi
servatus.
Cum codice versionis Vulgatae Amiatino contulit, prolegomena conscripsit, F. H. A. Scrivener, A.M., D.C.L., LL.D.,
With 3 plates. 1. is.
THEOLOGY-(ANCIENT).
rities.
C. A.
Cambridge.
Geschichte
historisch-kritischen
der
S.
PAUL.
The
Latin Ver-
sion with the Greek Fragments, edited from the MSS. with Notes
and an Introduction, by H. B. Swete, D.D. In Two Volumes.
Volume I., containing the Introduction, with Facsimiles of the MSS.,
and the Commentary upon Galatians Colossians. Demy 8vo. 12s.
Guardian.
"Auf Grund
handschriften
.
sind vortreffliche photo.
graphische Facsimile's beigegeben, wie iiberhaupt das ganze Werk von der University
Press zu Cambridge mit bekannter Eleganz
ausgestattet ist. "
Theologische Literaturzei.
tuftg.
bei
ster Sachkenntniss sein Werk mit alien denjenigen Zugaben ausgeriistet, welche bei einer
solchen Text-Ausgabe nur irgend erwartet
.
Von den drei Hauptwerden konnen.
II.,
containing the
fiir
welche
alle
zugang-
sich-
Commentary on
Werk
VOLUME
"Eine Ausgabe
Swete's
LiterarischesCentralblatt{]\x\y2g, 1882).
"M. Jacobi...commen5a...une edition du
texte.
Ce travail a ete repris en Angleterre et
Thessalonians
12s.
comprising
Pirqe Aboth and Pereq R. Meir in Hebrew and English, with Critical and Illustrative Notes.
By Charles Taylor, D.D., Master
of St John's College, Cambridge. Demy 8vo.
los.
"The 'Masseketh Aboth' stands at the
"A careful and thorough edition which does
head of Hebrew non-canonical
writings.
It is
London
C. y,
Cla Y
rary Review.
Lane.
Warehouse^
PUBLICATIONS OF
Lecturer in
By W. H. Lowe, M.A.,
Cambridge.
at Christ's College,
Royal 8vo.
21s.
libros
quinque adversus Hasreses, versione Latina cum Codicibus Claromontano ac Arundeliano denuo collata, prsemissa de placitis Gnosticorum prolusione, fragmenta necnon Grsece, Syriace, Armeniace,
commentatione perpetua et indicibus variis edidit W. WiGAN
Harvey, S.T.B. CoUegii Regalis olim Socius. 2 Vols. 8vo. iSj.
M.
THEOPHILI
EPISCOPI
TRES AD AUTOLYCUM
ANTIOCHENSIS
LIBRI
THEOPHYLACTI
IN
edidit,
MATTH^I
EVANGELIUM
S.
edited by W. G. Humphry, B.D. Prebendary
Demy 8vo. js. 6d.
of St Paul's, late Fellow of Trinity College.
COMMENTARIUS,
TERTULLIANUS DE CORONA
MILITIS,
DE SPEC-
8vo.
5^-.
J.
Cambridge.
Rendel Harris,
With two
M.A.,
Facsimiles.
Fellow of
Demy
4to.
Demy
4to.
1.
J.
Newly
Clare
College,
12s. 6d.
Newly
edited,
\s.
THEOLOGY-(ENGLISH).
Demy
8vo.
A new
and a
Barrow.
ys. 6d.
edited
Pearson's famous
special pains
London :
C. J.
Cla v
Lane.
Warehouse,
ELIZABETH.
Now
~s.
First Reprinted.
Demy
8vo.
6d.
to their writings
SELECT DISCOURSES,
considerable work
rary Review.
THE HOMILIES,
liams's revised
'Select
with Various
Times.
decem Oxonii
Demy
Svo.
js.
6d.
METHOD OF
LECTURES ON DIVINITY
S.
IN
THE HISTORY
OF CHRISTIAN THOUGHT.
1885.
London
By W.
C. J.
PUBLICATIONS OF
&c.
THE
distinguished by versatility,
dd.
W. Wright,
OR,
ist."
THE FABLES OF
NALOPAKHYANAM,
or,
Hebrew.
Demy
Svo.
los.
Classical Students,
Demy Svo. 12s.
J.
Peile,
Litt.
for
the use of
Demy
by
London
C.
y.
Cla v
Lane.
Warehouse^
CLASSICS,
&c.
m.
Part
Demy
Antigone.
8vo.
12s. 6d.
In fact, one might take this edition
with him on a journey, and, without any other
help whatever, acquire with comfort and delight a thorough acquaintance with the noblest
production of, perhaps, the most difficult of all
Greek poets the most difficult, yet possessed
at the same time of an immortal charm for one
who has mastered him, as Mr Jebb has, and
can feel so subtly perfection of form and Ianguage...We await with lively expectation the
continuation, and completion of Mr Jebb's
great task, and it is a fortunate thing that his
power of work seems to be as great as the style
is happy in which the work is done."
The
vivacity
pattern of editing. The work is made complete by a prose translation, upon pages alternating with the text, of which we may say
shortly that it displays sound judgment and
taste, without sacrificing precision to poetry of
expression."
The Times.
"This larger edition he has deferred these
many years for reasons which he has given in
his preface, and which we accept with entire
satisfaction, as we have now the first portion
of a work composed in the fulness of his powers
and with all the resources of fine erudition and
laboriously earned experience. ..We will confidently aver, then, that the edition is neither
tedious nor long
for we get in one compact
volume such a cyclopaedia of instruction, such
a variety of helps to the full comprehension of
the poet, as not so many years ago would have
needed a small library, and all this instruction
and assistance given, not in a dull and pedantic
way, but in a style of singular clearness and
Athenceutit.
"An edition which marks a definite advance, which is whole in itself, and brings a
mass of solid and well-wrought material such
as future constructors will desire to adapt, is
definitive in the only applicable sense of the
term, and such is the edition of Professor Jebb.
No man is better fitted to express in relation to
Sophocles the mind of the present generation."
XOH<i)OPOI IN
LIBRO MEDICEO MENDOSE SCRIPTAE EX VV. DD.
CONIECTURIS EMENDATIUS EDITAE cum Scholiis Graecis
brevi adnotatione critica,
']$. 6d.
8vo.
at
curante F. A.
Demy
With a Trans-
lation
"
One
in
Greek tragedy."
Crown
8vo.
in
"The
ought
to be,
7s.
6d.
ARISTOTLE'S PSY-
by
Athetueuin.
i8j.
" Wallace's Bearbeitung derAristotelischen
Psychologie ist das Werk eines denkenden und
in alien Schriften des Aristoteles und grosstenteils auch in der neueren Litteratur zu densel-
ben belesenen
Marines
Der schwachste
Philologische IVocJienschrift
THE FIFTH
BOOK OF THE NICOMACHEAN ETHICS OF ARISTOTLE.
Henry Jackson,
Demy 8vo. ds.
light
London
C. J.
Cla y Qr'
Litt.D.,
will
edit."
Athenaum.
Ave Maria
Lane.
15
PUBLICATIONS OF
a Commentary
M. Cope, Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge, revised and edited by J. E. Sandys, Litt.D. With a biographical
Memoir by the late H. A. J. MuNRO, Litt.D. 3 Vols., Demy 8vo.
at 31 J. dd)
Now reduced to 21x. {originally published
"Mr Sandys has performed his arduous
"Thiswork is in manyways creditable to the
by the
late E.
duties with
marked
ability
and admirable
tact.
exceedingly \ie\\."Examuier.
With
Crown
8vo. gj.
Fennell deserves the thanks of all clasand scholarly ediHe
tion of the Olympian and Pythian odes.
brings to his task the necessary enthusiasm for
his author, great industrj', a sound judgment,
and, in particular, copious and minute learning
Jesus College.
"Mr
By
same
the
with In-
Crown
Svo.
ds.
"Mr
We
Part II. Pro Phormione, Contra Stephanum I. II.; Nicostratum, Cononem, CaUiclem. New Edition. Crown Svo. "js. 6d.
"
DEMOSTHENES
mosthenes
'.''
Saturday Revie^u.
"
AGAINST
Atke>uru7n.
ANDROTION
AND
AGAINST TIMOCRATES,
William
mentary, by
with Introductions and English ComWayte, M.A., late Professor of Greek, Uni-
Spectator.
PLATO'S PH^DO,
London
C.
J.
With
ii
Introduction,
New
ness of form reflects great credit on the University Press. In the notes Mr Sandys has more
than sustained his well-earned reputation as a
careful and learned editor, and shows consider-
COINS.
By Percy Gardner,
D., F.S.A.
With 16 Autotype plates, containing photographs of
Coins of all parts of the Greek World. Impl. 4to. Cloth extra,
^i. lis. 6d.; Roxburgh (Morocco back), 2. 2s.
"Professor Gardner's book is written with
be distinctly recommended to that omnivorous
'men in the schools'." Sasuch lucidity and in a manner so straightforclass of readers
ward that it may well win converts, and it may
turday Review.
Litt.
Buckram,
16 Plates.
30J.
" I acknowledge expressly the warm enthusiasm for ideal art which pervades the whole
volume, and the sharp eye Dr Waldstein has
proved himself to possess in his special line of
study, namely, stylistic analysis, which has led
him to several happy and important discoveries.
His book will be universally welcomed as a
The Academy.
" 'Essays on the Art of Pheidias' form an
extremely valuable and important piece of
work.
Taking it for the illustrations alone,
it is an exceedingly fascinating book."
Times.
.
M.
M.
BRUTUM ORATOR.
"This volume,
is
adorned with
"
model edition."
"The commentary
Spectator.
is
in
every
way worthy
Academy.
M.
The
S.
M. T.
revised
text
Reid,
Litt. D.,
and
Fellow
much
of
the
work
Cr. 8vo.
secure."
9.^.
American
Joicrnal of Philology.
M. T.
With
LL.D.
London
position
Introduction, Analysis
Crown 8vo. 2s.
C. y.
16
PUBLICATIONS OF
M.
LIONIS REO] ORATIO AD QVIRITES With Notes Introducand Appendices by W. E. Heitland, M.A., Fellow and Tutor of
Demy 8vo. Ts.M.
St John's College, Cambridge.
_^^^,^,,
tion
M.
NATURA DEORUM
TULLII CICERONIS DE
Libri
P.
Commentario
io.r.
jetzt,
vol. 35, p.
90
foil.
et
Vol. III.
Critico edidit B.
cum
Prolegomenis
27.
&c.
By
W. Thomson,
LL.D., D.C.L., F.R.S., Professor of Natural Philosophy in the University of Glasgow. Collected from different
Vol. I.
Scientific Periodicals from May 1841, to the present time.
Sir
[Volume
Demy
Vol. II.
\^s.
8vo.
i%s.
"Wherever exact science has found a follower Sir William Thomson's name is known as
a leader and a master. For a space of 40 years
each of his successive contributions to knowledge in the domain of experimental and mathematical physics has been recognized as marking
a stage in the progress of the subject. But, unhappily for the mere learner, he is no writer of
His eager fertility overflows into
text-books.
The papers in
the nearest available journal
volume
deal
largely with the subject of the
this
dynamics of heat. They begin with two ot
.
III.
In the Press.
age of
The
Times.
"We
by
G. G. Stokes, M.A., LL.D., F.R.S., Lucasian Professor of Mathematics in the University of Cambridge. Reprinted from the Original
Journals and Transactions, with Additional Notes by the Author.
Demy
Vol. I.
8vo.
15J.
Vol.11. 15^-.
[Vol. III.
I?i the Press.
" ...The same spirit pervades the papers on
which well befits the subtle nature of the subjef^s. and inspires the completest confidence in
pure mathematics which are included in the
volume. They have a severe accuracy of style
their author."
T/te Times.
from Gahlei
to
A TREATISE ON GEOMETRICAL
R. S. Heath, M.A., Professor of
College, Birmingham.
Demy 8vo.
Mathematics
OPTICS.
in
12s. 6d.
CLERK MAXWELL.
Royal
London
Edited by
W.
4to.
C.
y.
Cla y
Lane.
PROF.
By
Mason Science
Warehouse^
PRESS.
13
CAYLEY,
Mathematics
in the University of
Demy
Cambridge.
4to.
Sir
Demy
Parti.
8vo.
By
Part
16s.
Demy
II.
8vo.
i8s.
CAPILLARY ACTION
J.
C.
by
Francis Bashforth,
Demy
^i.
4to.
and
B.D.,
i.r.
A TREATISE ON THE THEORY OF DETERMInants and their applications in Analysis and Geometry, by R. F.
Scott, M.A., Fellow of St John's College. Demy 8vo. 12s.
HYDRODYNAMICS,
Treatise
on
of Fluids, by Horace
Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge.
the Mathematical
Lamb, M.A., formerly
Demy
8vo.
12s.
by Joseph
Freeman, M.A.,
Demy
8vo.
formerly
12^.
PRACTICAL WORK AT THE CAVENDISH LABORATORY. HEAT. Edited by W. N. Shaw, M.A. Demy 8vo.
THE ELECTRICAL RESEARCHES OF THE Hon. H.
35.
P. G.
Tait, M.A.
Secotid Edition.
Demy
8vo.
14^-.
THE MATHEMATICAL WORKS OF ISAAC BARROW, D.D. Edited by W. Whewell, D.D, Demy 8vo.
6d.
COUNTERPOINT. A Practical Course of Study, by the
is.
late
M.A.,
Mus. Doc.
New
by M. M. Pattison Muir, M.A., Fellow and PreeChemistry of Gonville and Caius College. Demy 8vo. I5.y.
[iVe7c> Edition.
In the Press.
'
'
J.
Chemistry
London :
C.
y.
in
By H.
Carnegie, B.A.
Concise and
PUBLICATIONS OF
14
S.
With
"To
lis.
say that Dr Vines' book is a most
Demy
8vo.
Illustrations,
Litt.D.,
Demy 8vo.
a Study
DIOPHANTOS OF ALEXANDRIA;
of Greek Algebra.
Trinity College, Cambridge.
By
Histor}'
Demy
T.
L.
8vo.
\os. 6d.
the
in
of
6d.
"js.
had
8vo.
Year
By
1879.
the late
W. Keeping,
Demy
M.A., F.G.S.
\os. 6d.
Thompson, M. A.
DemySvo.
smaller groups
1883,
by D'Arcy W.
made
at the Obser-
12s. 6d.
ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS
ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS
Vol.
XXI.
Royal
Royal
4to.
15J.
From 1866
1869.
4to.
Vol. XXII.
[A'early ready.
formed by the
A CATALOGUE OF AUSTRALIAN
FOSSILS,
Strati-
Etheridge,
Jun.,
Museum
Demy
8vo.
of Zoology
for
the
Use
of Stu-
2s. 6d.
by the Rev.
Adam Sedgwick,
One
vol.,
Royal
4to.
Museum
With
Demy
London
Svo.
C. J.
Museum
con-
2s. 6d.
PRESS.
1$
LAW.
"An
invaluable
guide
towards
the
best
method
of
Law
study."
Quarterly
Rez'iiiv.
Essay
its
for
prizes."
By
for 1886.
T. E.
8vo.
los. 6d.
AN ANALYSIS OF CRIMINAL
LIABILITY. By
E. C.
interest
Clark."
in the
work of
Prof,
Y^ovi\%.
Centralblattfilr
nach
TRIALS.
By
J.
W.
Now reduced
Tlie Academy.
Saturday Review.
is
most interesting
46^'.)
points of social life which are incidentally illustrated in the course of the trials." Athenieum.
also
it is
collected, arranged,
Christi College,
London
C. y.
Cla v
(S-
and annotated by
Crown
College,
8vo. 6.$-.
such a student will be interested as well asperhaps surprised to find how abundantly the extant fragments illustrate and clear up points
which have attracted his attention in the Commentaries, or the Institutes, or the Digest."
Law
Tijiies.
Ave Maria
Lajie.
PUBLICATIONS OF
cided in the King's Courts during the reign of Henry the Third,
annotated by a Lawyer of that time, seemingly by Henry of Bratton.
Edited by F. W. Maitland of Lincoln's Inn, Barrister at Law,
Reader in English Law in the University of Cambridge. 3 vols.
Demy 8vo. Buckram. ^3. 3^. Net.
Containing
its
Demy
8vo.
9^.
JUSTINIAN'S DIGEST.
De
Usufructu
J.
RoBY, M.A.
Demy
Or
8vo.
the
9^-.
Two
Parts complete in
One Volume.
Demy
Svo.
\%s.
tamed and developed. Roman law, almost
more than Roman legions, was the backbone
of the Roman commonwealth. Mr Roby, by
his careful sketch of the sages of Roman law,
from Sextus Papirius, under Tarquin the
Proud, to the Byzantine Bar, has contributed to
render the tenacity and durability of the most
enduring polity the world has ever experienced
somewhat more intelligible." The Times.
one thing the editors deserve special commenThey have presented Gains to the
dation.
reader with few notes and those merely by
himself,
"We
late
translated
the ordinary student, whose attention is distraded from the subject-matter by the difthrough the language in
which it is contained, it will be almost indis-
ficulty of struggling
pensable." Spectator.
" The notes are learned and carefully conipiled, and this edition will be found useful to
students."
Times.
Law
Walker,
with
M.A., LL.D.
Part
annotated
Mandati
vel Contra.
Digest XVIL I. Crown Svo. 5^.
Part II.
De Adquirendo rerum dominio and De Adquirenda vel
amittenda possessione. Digest XLL i and 11. Crown Svo. 6j-.
Part III. De Condictionibus. Digest XIL i and 4 7 and Digest
XI IL I 3. Crown Svo. 6s.
late B.
I.
PACIS, with
the Notes
London
C. J.
17
HISTORY.
LIFE
---
and talk even more than usual of Prince Bismarck, and Professor Seeley's very learned work
on Stein will turn attention to an earlier and an
almost equally eminent German statesman. 1
has been the good fortune of Prince Bismarck
to help to raise Prussia to a position
to
which she
complete the
work of German
unification.
The frustrated
labours of Stein in the same field were also
very great, and well worthy to be taken into
account.
He was one, perhaps the chief, of
the illustrious group of strangers who came to
the rescue of Prussia in her darkest hour, about
the time of the inglorious Peace of Tilsit, and
who laboured to put life and order into her
no
Germans
Demy
Times.
3 Vols.
to shiink."
8vo.
30^-.
countrj',
aviiner.
English
Am-
Knightbridge
Maps
"Mr
Cunningham is not likely to disappoint any readers except such as begin by mistaking the character of his book. He does not
promise, and does not give, an account of the
dimensions to which English industry and com-
London
C.
J.
Christ's College
We
PUBLICATIONS OF
TRAVELS
NORTHERN ARABIA
IN
By Charles M. Doughty,
1877.
of Gonville
IN 1876
Demy
by MUNSHI
Shunker Singh and Pandit ShrI Gunanand edited
With
Illustrations
and a Map.
HISTORY OF NEPAL,
2 vols.
AND
translated
SHEW
with an
late
Introduction
observation,
didly,
A JOURNEY
RESEARCH
is
is
OF
IN
during
iSs.
tages
it
Titnes.
by
and industry."
ecclesiastical,
political,
social,
literary
to be
Athenceum.
SCHOLAE ACADEMICAL:
By Chris-
Demy
Svo.
6d.
lOi-.
London
Edited
"The work
C. y.
Enghsh
19
MISCELLANEOUS.
A LATIN-ENGLISH DICTIONARY.
(Incomplete)
^i. 1 1 6d.
MS.
J-.
IN
GREAT
Adolf Michaelis.
Translated by C, A. M.
Fennell, Litt. D., late Fellow of Jesus College. Royal Svo. Roxburgh (Morocco back), 2. 2s.
"The object of the present work of Michto the Cambridge Press. It has not been printed
Prof.
aelis is to describe
Saturday Review.
''
Professor Michaelis has achieved so high
a fame as an authority in classical archaeology
that it seems unnecessary to say how good
a book this is." The Antiquary.
Zs.
js.
Conway.
Demy
SANCE.
An
Svo.
los. 6d.
Introductory Essay.
A GRAMMAR OF THE
Crown
Svo.
IRISH LANGUAGE.
WINDISCH. Translated by Dr
6^.
By
Svo.
LECTURES ON TEACHING,
Prof.
ys. 6d.
of
For
London
We
tele.
other books on Education, see Pitt Press Series, pp. 30, 31.
C.
J.
Cla v
^ SON'S,
Ave Maria
Lane,
PUBLICATIONS OF
20
graphi
et
virorvm
Cvm
Epistvlae.
Ortelii (Geo-
ad evndem
ervditorvm
ad
et
Ortelii
sororis filivm)
qvibvsdam ab
By Edmund
an
Inquiry into
phenomena
Edited by
Jan. 16789.
College, and S. C. Venn.
J.
Venn,
Demy
8vo.
March 15589
to
Sc.D.,
\os.
Volume
SCHlLLER-SziNESSY.
Scriptures; Section
ll.
By
Library, Cambridge.
Section i.
I. containing
Demy
M.
S.
The Holy
Demy
Dr
8vo.
gj.
preserved
8vo. 5 Vols,
8vo.
los.
loj. each.
A CATALOGUE OF ADVERSARIA
containing
MS.
Cambridge,
THE
IN
Li-
LOGUS
sionum
exhibens nomina eorum quos ab Anno Academico Admisusque adoctavum diem Octobris
MDCCC
MDCCCLXXXIV
gradu quocunque ornavit Academia Cantabrigiensis, e libris subscriptionum desumptus. Cura Henrici Richards Luard S. T. P.
Coll. SS. Trin. Socii atque Academiae Registrarii. Demy 8vo. 12s. dd.
and
Demy
8vo., cloth.
TRUSTS, STATUTES
(i)
The
and
Professorships of the
Prizes.
(3)
7s. 6d.
AND DIRECTIONS
University.
(2)
affecting
The Scholarships
Demy
8vo.
5^-.
London
C. J.
Demy
8vo.
6d.
21
%\)t
General Editor
S.
Perowne, D.D.,
" It is difficult to commend too highly this excellent series, the volumes of which are now
becoming numerous." Guardian.
"The modesty of the general title of this series has, we believe, led many to misunderstand
The books are well suited for study in the upper forms of
its character and underrate its value.
our best schools, but not the less are they adapted to the wants of all Bible students who are not
We doubt, indeed, whether any of the numerous popular commentaries recently
specialists.
issued in this country will be found more serviceable for general use." Academy.
" One of the most popular and useful literary enterprises of the nineteenth century." Baptist
Magazine.
" Of great value. The whole series of comments for schools is highly esteemed by students
capable of forming a judgment. The books are scholarly without being pretentious: information
is
Sword and
Trowel.
late
of Hebrew.
M.A.,
J. J. Lias,
late Professor at St
David's
College, Lafnfeter.
J.
R.
W.
F.
Rev. E. H.
and
University
Librarian.
London: C.
J Clav Qr'
.
PUBLICATIONS OF
Maps.
THE BOOK OF
With Map.
D.D.
6d.
^s.
By
JUDGES.
Rev.
the
J.
J.
M.A.
Lias,
6d.
3^-.
3^.
With
KIRKPATRICK, M.A.
Maps.
By
6d.
35.
5.?.
of Wells.
55.
M.A.
^s. 6d.
is. ()d.
With
Maps.
G. F. Maclear, D.D.
With 4 Maps.
4 Maps.
By
ST LUKE.
By Archdeacon
4^. 6d.
With
4 Maps.
4^-.
LuMBY, D.D.
4^-.
3^.
Lias,
M.A.
By the Rev. H.
C. G.
6d.
With
Map and
Flan.
By the Rev.
2s.
J. J.
Lias,
M.A.
By
the
G.
2^.
Rev.
the
By
6d.
6d.
the Rev.
2s. 6d.
By the
is. 6d.
Arch-
y.
F.
is. dd.
By
the Rev. H.
2s. 6d.
THE
same Editor.
2s.
M.A., D.D.
:
C. y.
IS.
15.
6d.
AND
ST JUDE.
By
the
6d.
THE EPISTLES OF
London
of Wells.
EPISTLES OF ST PETER
6d.
ST JOHN.
By
the
Rev. A. Plummer,
23
Preparing.
Ryle, M.A.
with a Revised Text, based on the most recent critical authorities, and
Enghsh Notes, prepared under the direction of the General Editor,
J.
PEROWNE,
S.
J.
D.D.
Now Ready.
THE GOSPEL ACCORDING TO ST MATTHEW.
Rev. A. Carr, M.A.
With 4 Maps.
4^'.
By
the
^d.
" Copious illustrations, gathered from a great variety of sources, make his notes a very valuThey are indeed remarkably interesting, while all explanations on
able aid to the student.
meanings, applications, and the like are distinguished by their lucidity and good sense."
Pall Mall Gazette.
With
Maps.
ST MARK.
By
the Rev.
45-. (>d.
'"The Cambridge Greek Testament, of which Dr Maclear's edition of the Gospel according to
St Mark is a volume, certainly supplies a want. Without pretending to compete with the leading
commentaries, or to embody very much original research, it forms a most satisfactory introduction
Dr Maclear's introduction contains all that
to the study of the New Testament in the origmal
is known of St Mark's life, with references to passages in the New Testament in which he is
mentioned an account of the circumstances in which the Gospel was composed, with an estimate
of the influence of St Peter's teaching upon St Mark: an e.\cellent sketch of the special characteran analysis, and a chapter on the te.\t of the New Testament generally
istics of this Gospel
The work is completed by three good maps." Saturday Revieiu.
.
W^ith 4 Maps.
6s.
By Archdeacon
With
Maps.
ST JOHN.
By
the Rev. A.
ds.
'
T-
35.
J.
J. J.
M.A., D.D.
London
C. y.
4.f.
Warehoiise,
PUBLICATIONS OF
24
for
GREEK.
I.
School Edition,
XENOPHON. ANABASIS,
Books
I.
III.
IV. and V.
With
BOOKS
By
same
XENOPHON. ANABASIS.
two Volumes.
and Notes, complete
XENOPHON. AGESILAUS.
in
7^.
The
Text
revised
with
Critical
By
XENOPHON. CYROPAEDEIA.
Notes and Map.
troduction,
Vol.
1 vols.
I.
Text.
Books
III., IV.,
ARISTOPHANES RANAE.
Introduction by
School. 3^. 6d.
W.
C.
6s.
By
V.
Green, M.A.,
ARISTOPHANES AVES.
late
By
Assistant Master at
same
the
Editor.
Rugby
New
^s. 6d.
Edition,
"The notes to both plays are excellent. Much has been done in these two volumes to render
the study of Aristophanes a real treat to a boy instead of a drudgery, by helping him to understand the fun and to express it in his mother tongue." The Examiner.
ARISTOPHANES PLUTUS.
By G. M. Edwards, M.A.
2s. 6d.
Emmanuel College,
"A worthy representative
CRITO.
By
Adam,
2^'.
6d.
London :
3^'.
C. J.
Edited with
Shuckburgh, M.A.,
late
Fellow of
35. 6d.
HERODOTUS, Book
Editor.
Appendix.
6d.
Classical Review.
HERODOTUS, Book
Emmanuel
With Introduction,
of English Scholarship."
With
same Editor.
the
^.f.
J.
ss.6d.
Introduction, Notes
IX.,
Chaps. 189.
By
the
same
6d.
HERCULES FURENS.
EURIPIDES.
25
With
Intro-
ductions, Notes
and
J.
Saturday
"Messrs Hutchinson and Gray have produced a careful and useful edition."
Re-aiexv.
and
Introduction
Critical
y.
6d.
W.
by
New
PLUTARCH'S LIFE OF
Notes, and Lexicon.
By
the Rev.
Hubert
Intro-
A.
With Introduction
and Notes.
With
duction, Notes
-^s.
Edited by E.
(See p. 31.)
LATIN.
II.
HORACE EPISTLES,
Book
Shuckburgh, M.A.,
duction by E. S.
I.
late
Intro-
2s. 6d.
Book XXI.
LIVY.
By M.
S.
College.
CICERONIS DE AMICITIA.
M. T.
3^-.
6d.
Edited by
J. S.
D., Fellow and Tutor of Gonville and Caius College.
New
Edition, with Additions.
3^-. 6d.
"Mr Reid has decidedly attained his aim, namely, 'a thorough examination of the Latinity
of the dialogue.
The revision of the te.xt is most valuable, and comprehends sundry
Reid,
Litt.
'
acute corrections.
ship of the country."
.
"A
This volume,
like
Mr
is
A theticeum.
Mr
more
is
3^-. 6d.
Edited by J. S. Reid, Litt. D. Revised Edition.
" The notes are excellent and scholarlike, adapted for the upper forms of
be useful even
M. T.
M. T.
likely to
to
public schools,
and
Guardian.
Edited by
"
wish
It is
to
know about
.
step in scholarship."
M. T.
Academy.
T/ie
CICERONIS PRO
TIO.
L.
Edited by
i.f. 6d.
J. S. Reid, Litt. D.
"
are bound to recognize the pains devoted in the annotation of these two orations to the
minute and thorough study of their Latinity, both in the ordinary notes and in the textual
We
appendices."
London
Saturday Review.
C.
J.
PUBLICATIONS OF
26
M.
PRO
CICERONIS
T.
ORATIO.
CORNELIO SULLA
P.
" Mr Reid is so
that a new work from him
His edition of the speech Pro Sulla is fully equal in
scarcely needs any commendation of ours.
merit to the volumes which he has already published ... It would be difficult to speak too highly
of the notes. There could be no better way of gaining an insight into the characteristics of
Cicero's style and the Latinity of his period than by making a careful study of this speech with
Mr Reid's intimate knowledge of the minutest details of
the aid of Mr Reid's commentary
scholarship enables him to detect and explain the slightest points of distinction between the
The notes are followed by a valuable
usages of different authors and diflerent periods
appendix on the text, and another on points of orthography ; an excellent index brings the work
Saturday Revie-w.
to a close."
.
M.
T.
Edited by H. A.
Greek
in
to the University of
4^. ()d.
can have few rivals. It is enriched by an excellent introwhile in its apduction and a chronological table of the principal events of the life of Cicero
pendix, and in the notes on the text which are added, there is much of the greatest value. The
volume is neatly got up, and is in every way commendable.' Tlte Scotsman.
;
M. T.
Fellows of
MURENA,
L.
with
'
'
\s.
6d.
M. T.
T.
A.
MILONE,
M. T.
TULLI
M.
CICERONIS
ORATIO
NASONIS FASTORUM
OVIDII
P.
In-
Potsdam
PHILIPPICA
SECUNDA.
Fellow of
of
Peskett, M.A.,
Liber VI.
With
" Mr Sidgwick's editing of the Sixth Book of Ovid's Fasti furnishes a careful and serviceable
volume for average students. It eschews 'construes' which supersede the use of the dictionary,
full explanation of grammatical usages and historical and mythical allusions, besides
illustrating peculiarities of style, true and false derivations, and the more remarkable variations of
the text." Saturday Review.
" It is eminently good and useful.
The Introduction is singularly clear on the astronomy of
Ovid, which is properly shown to be ignorant and confused; there is an excellent little map of
Rome, giving just the places mentioned in the text and no more the notes are evidently written
by a practical schoolmaster."- TJie Academy.
but gives
M.
PRIMUS,
M.A. and
C. E.
lege,
"A
Cambridge.
6d.
" In nice
London
C. J.
from Shakspeare,
Mr
Haskins and
Mr
27
I.
COMMENT.
COMMENT.
same
the
Editor.
2s.
COMxMENT.
same
Editor,
11.
I.
IV.
by the same
III.
AND
Editor,
AND COMMENT.
V.
is.
VII. by
each.
VI.
AND COMMENT.
VIII.
by the
6d. each.
is.
Saturday Revieiu.
" Mr Arthur SidgT,vick's 'Vergil, Aeneid, Book XII.' is worthy of his reputation, and is distinguished by the same acuteness and accuracy of knowledge, appreciation of a boy's difficulties
and ingenuity and resource in meeting them, which we have on other occasions had reason to
praise in these pages."
The Academy.
"As masterly in its clearly divided preface and appendices as in the sound and independent
character of its annotations.
There is a great deal more in the notes than mere compilation
and suggestion. ... No difficulty is left unnoticed or unhandled." Saturday Review.
.
P.
By
the
same Editor,
6d.
II.
is.
By
3^.
is. 6d.
QUINTUS CURTIUS. A
(Alexander
in India.)
of St John's College,
Sherborne School. 35. 6d.
"Equally commendable as a genuine addition to the existing stock of school-books is
Alexander in India, a compilation from the eighth and ninth books of Q. Curtius, edited for
the Pitt Press by Messrs Heitland and Raven.
The work of Curtius has merits of its
own, which, iu former generations, made it a favourite with English scholars, and which still
in
make
7^.
6d.
"To young students of English History the illustrative notes will be of great service, while
the study of the texts will be a good introduction to Mediaeval Latin."
The Notuonformist.
" In Bede's works Englishmen can go back to origities of their history, unequalled for
form and matter by any modern European nation. Prof. Mayor has done good service in rendering a part of Bede's greatest work accessible to those who can read Latin with ease. He
has adorned this edition of the third and fourth books of the 'Ecclesiastical History' with that
amazing erudition for which he is unrivalled among Englishmen and rarely equalled by Germans,
And however interesting and valuable the text may be, we can certainly apply to his notes
the expression, La sauce vant tnieitx que le poisson. They are literally crammed with interesting information about early English life.
For though ecclesiastical in name, Bede's history treats
of all parts of the national life, since the Church had points of contact with all." Exatnitier.
Books
Londojt
C.
J.
Cla v 6^
I.
and
II.
In
the Press.
Ave Maria
Lane.
PUBLICATIONS OF
28
III.
FRENCH.
at
Wellington
IS.
MEROVINGIENS
TEMPS
DES
RECITS
I~III.
LA CANNE DE JONC. By
Notes by Rev. H. A. Bull, M.A.
BATAILLE DE DAMES.
Edited by Rev. H. A. Bull, M.A.
JEANNE D'ARC by A. De
De
A.
Vigny.
Edited with
is.
Lamartine.
With
Map
LE BOURGEOIS GENTILHOMME,
Comedie-Ballet en
Moliere.
3J,
is. 6d.
LE VERRE D'EAU. A
is.
Comedy, by Scribe.
With a
HISTOIRE DU SIECLE
DE
VOLTAIRE.
IS. 6d.
Part
Chaps.
II.
By
of the Period.
Part III,
Editors,
M.
is.
DARU,
the
same
Chap.
XIV. XXIV.
Editors,
XXV,
is.
to
6d.
the
end.
By
the
same
6d.
M.
C. A. Sainte-Beuve, (Causeries du
With Biographical Sketch of the Author, and Notes
and Historical. By Gustave Masson. is.
par
LA SUITE DU MENTEUR. A
is.
LA JEUNE SIBERIENNE.
CITfi
LE LEPREUX DE LA
D'AOSTE.
Tales by Count Xavier de Maistre. With Biographical Notice, Critical Appreciations, and Notes. By G. Masson,
2s.
London
C. J.
Press Warehouse^
29
LE DIRECTOIRE.
Franjaise.
Troisieme
et
" Prussia under Frederick the Great, and France under the Directory, bring us face to face
respectively with periods of history which it is right should be known thoroughly, and which
are well treated in the Pitt Press volumes. The latter in particular, an extract from the
world-known work of Madame de Stael on the French Revolution, is beyond all praise for
the excellence both of its style and of its matter."
Times.
Livre
II.
Chapitres 18.
FREDEGONDE ET BRUNEHAUT. A
Acts, by N. Lemercier.
logical Tables, a Critical
Gustave Masson.
Tragedy
in
Five
is.
LE VIEUX CELIBATAIRE.
Comedy, by Collin
D'Harleville.
and Historical
LA METROMANIE, A
the
LASCARIS, ou LES
By
is.
is. 6d.
GERMAN.
IV.
DOCTOR WESPE. Benedix. Lustspiel in fUnf AufEdited with Notes by Karl Hermann Breul, M.A. y.
SELECTED FABLES. Lessing and Gellert. Edited
ziigen.
DIE
KARAVANE
von
WiLHELM Hauff.
t,s.
German
at
the
Edited with
6d.
CULTURGESCHICHTLICHE' NOVELLEN,
von W. H.
RiEHL, with Grammatical, Philological, and Historical Notes, and a Complete Index, by H. J. Wolstenholme, B.A. (Lond.).
4^-. 6d.
Karl Gutzkow.
"We
Mr
H.
@oett)e'e
(Lond.),
5?nabenia^re.
Academy.
(1749 1759.)
GOETHE'S BOY-
J.
Cla y
^ So.vs, Catnbridge
Ave Maria
PUBLICATIONS OF
30
MENDELSSOHN'S LETTERS.
by James Sime, M. A.
Selections from.
Edited
3.^.
Master
late Assistant
at
Edited
Uppingham School.
6d.
DER OBERHOF. A
Der
erfte
Ar-
3^-.
i?reu5^ug
RICH VON Raumer. Condensed from the Author's 'History of the HohenBy
staufen', with a life of Raumer, two Plans and English Notes.
2s.
the same Editor.
" Certainly no more interesting book could be made the subject of examinations. The story
of the First Crusade has an undying interest. The notes are, on the whole, good." Ediuational
Times.
zs.
"It
Times.
With Notes.
Freytag.
Cartmell, M.A.
among
Academy.
notes are
abundant."
same Editor,
By
y. 6d.
the best that
By
the
same Editor.
we know, with
COWLEY'S ESSAYS.
by
F.
J.
W.
ENGLISH.
By
THOMAS MORE'S
Rev.
J.
Kohlrausch.
SIR
With
Revised edition by
Da6
V.
G.
zs.
GOETHE'S
"The
the
UTOPIA.
35.
Fellow
6d.
We
English literature."
London:
Guardian.
BACON'S
HENRY
VII.
C. J",
With Notes by
Clay
the Rev.
J.
^ Sons, Cambridge
3^.
31
Edited
III.
edited
with
Intro-
duction and Notes by the Rev. Professor Skeat, Litt.D., formerly Fellow
3J. 6d.
of Christ's College, Cambridge.
"This edition of a play that is well worth study, for more reasons than one, by so careful a
scholar as
"Mr
Mr
Skeat
LOCKE ON EDUCATION.
by the Rev. R. H. Quick, M.A.
Times.
"The work before us leaves nothing to be desired. It is of convenient form and reasonable
There is no teacher
price, accurately printed, and accompanied by notes which are admirable.
The
too young to find this book interesting; there is no teacher too old to find it profitable."
School Bulletin, Neiu York.
Notes, by
Edited,
fac-
"A
separate reprint of Milton's famous letter to Master Samuel Hartlib was a desideratum,
for his elegant and scholarly edition, to which is prefixed the
in his 'History of Educational Theories.'"
yournal of
Educntioti.
By
the
Edward Thring,
Joiirtial
of Edncatioti.
IN
in the
Term,
His
Edwin Wallace,
"A
Mayor
C. J.
Cla y
Qr'
Maria Lane.
LOCAL EXAMINATIONS.
for various
Examination Papers,
Examination.
Demy
8vo.
for the
Examination Papers
is.
Demy
By
8vo.
by Post
is.,
is.
2d.
188081.
is.
to
Bvo.
Vol. XVI.
1886 87, 15 j. ^/^/y^.
44 to 65.
Cambridge.
Hontion
c. j. clay and sons,
CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS WAREHOUSE,
AVE MARIA LANE.
GLASGOW: 263, ARGYLL STREET.
:
CAMBRIDGE: PRINTKP BY
C. J.
CLAY, M.A.
AND
SONS,
AT THE UNIVERSITY
PRESS.
SAYINGS
OP
SAYINGS
OF
HEBEEW AND
R.
MEIR
ENGLISH,
',
IS
TAKEN,
BY
CHARLES TAYLOR,
M.A.,
CAMBEIDGE WAEEHOUSE,
17,
Paternoster Eow,
Cambritigc:
1877
[All Rights reserved.']
CO.
^
Cambritige
INTEODUCTION.
Masseketh Aboth,
of the Fathers,
best
is
name from
known
it
maxims
of the
pages,
and
ethics,
is
although
of its Fifth
chiefly
it is
Its simplicity
and
in-
lasting popularity,
its
trinsic
it
It takes its
its
custom," writes
Aboth and
Thorah,
after
rite,
present day
and are
successive
Qinyan
Prayer
festivals
of Passover
and
Pentecost.
fulfil the
that.
dicta of the
Whosoever luould
Fathers,
is
be
2^^ous
quoted by Rabbinic
for
the pious.
^ Quoted by Rashi, "1 jD''D DTl2n '^^D.
Die Ritus des synagogalen Gottcsdienstes, p. 85.
German,
Polish,
S:c,
On
INTRODUCTION.
The
Law from
Sinai,
handed
it
down
to Joshua,
The Mosaic
Great Synagogue.
men
men
of
Synagogue speak
Words, which express the aim and function of the
new school of Soferim: "Be deliberate in judgment; and raise
up many disciples; and make a hedge to the Law." Next
comes Simon Justus, with his saying, that the three pillars of
the world are Revelation, Worship, and Humanity; and after
him the first teacher of Greek name, Antigonus, whose inthus far established, the
of the Great
their three
culcation
of disinterested
service
is
described
in
a Jewish
Sadducees, or
"
Sons of Zadok,"
From
this point
series of
onward
to the
moral sayings,
which are put into the mouths of Rabbis who lived within the
period from two centuries before to two centuries after Christ.
and
is
characterised by something of a
It touches
physical;
mere
upon
upon the
upon the
varieties of
of the good
and the
In form
evil dispositions.
its
it is
a series of
sayings, unlike
of the
it makes no mention
any Mishnah Teacher, until we come, at or near
name
of
in
INTRODUCTION.
of
tlie
Italian rite.
of
is
it is
rite.
In
its
work which
third
Aboth
most com-
it
is
number
is
much
earlier
R. Israel' of Toledo,
was embodied
in
Hebrew commentary
the
of his
lately
is
doing so
Literature in Cambridge.
Reader in Talmudic
promote the study of Jewish
as
much to
The sixth Pereq
is
taken from a
the
and
tively.
That
in the
is
it
name
MS.
positions in the
The Index
is to say,
its
title of
in the notes.
title,
But, as will be
although given by S. D.
is inaccui-ate.
Each chapter
in the
MS. forms
a continuous paragraph.
itself.
INTRODUCTION.
including two
complete
by
liae
literally
the
and
St John's College,
April 9 th, 1877.
1 Notice,
in the first extract, the reading DTIDS riT3X1, which a comparison of the two Gemaras shews to be characteristic of the " Jerushalmi."
The reading
in the extract
and beginning
one
of
'^?X
not 17X1
\.
CONTENTS.
English.
PAGE
Critical
Notes
Pirqe Aboth
25
Pereq R. Meir
113
Excursus.
I.
II.
III.
IV.
V.
Thorah.
Qabbalali.
The Decalogue,
Zadok.
Qeriyath Shema*.
Sadducee.
The Decalogue.
....
119
124
126
130
138
Hebrew.
Masseketh Aboth
(i)
Pereq R. Meir
(44)
(52)
(54)
In
the Press.
A CATALOGUE OF MANUSCRIPTS OF
THE TEXT OF ABOTH,
it,
MASSEKETH ABOTH
CRITICAL NOTES
PEREQ
The
Museum MSS.
Cambridge MSS.
470
A.
Addit. 27201
a.
University Addit.
B.
Orient. 1003
13.
St John's College, K. 7
C.
Addit. 27070
C.
Q.
University, Addit.
D.
E.
27072
17057
F.
27115
e.
(Machazor
Vitrj')
At
is
>i
JF.
145.
,,
667
1200
>>
561
Machazor.
It contains the
same commentary as
A+ and JF
Bab
S.
The
text of
denotes Isaac
Aboth
is
of the
S; Pereq VI from an
commentary
in B, 13.
nazic Prayer-Book.
In citations from the Mishxah the sections are given according to the
For the names of the tracts see the Comparative Index,
pp. (52. 3). and the notes upon it.
edition of Surenhuis.
The Hebrew
letters,
are transliterated,
The
rest are
which
nn,
Fl,
t2,
V,
tth,
th,
t,
f,
]),
p,
3-
',
q,
l',
n.
ch,
2.
|1tt''D
is
Berak.
i.
8)
corresponding to
of.
Vin IV*
There
is
(11.
15).
a short form
2iii<i>v.
Ahoth
a,
3.
i^me,
B, niC*.
Seo
n2C'.
13,
nSc^ ni!3 Sy
1)0
I.
Dy
(uot
sVl")
MSS, and
is
bp^
pi D-12
^sn may!?
n:i23n S'n
i:i^'i
to
nnaon noia
Cf. Mcgil.
2i)(i,
Nn-IiEp nvj'V^
sk" O
y.
in tho text of
pUiral
P^
is
linnnsD
marks of
J<"?w'
D'y.
and
HDI*,
13 nTs*.
The
transposition
(!?
is
rvtainod
i.
S)
or to Shiuie'ou and Antigouiis ;K. Jonah; bar S.}; the singular 13DD (C, D)
to Autigonus.
For nX.!}V2
Ou
xvii. 3.
rh^
-^'-
<^f-
Jt^r.
ii.
h27\\
MUrash
nd-jh n'h
N;!2V3
cf.
Ex,
nit:^r*iT
nvjc-o
m*D
Nn*L"3
nns Dyt3 ^s
5.
adds
(after
in*3
J3),
ni:y in'2
nX
'32
T^bl.
Aboth
Cf.
R. N. TU.
12 inC*X2
6.
is
twrS.}.
mi
1"^
inrsn
The expression
note
(A, against
R. N. vn.).
B'IV (Aboth
D:.T3
".
Aboth
found in T.
R.
>'.
J.
Fe:ih
vii.;
i.
v. 29,
1;
x.
1.
Challah
9.
For *5<n5 o3
7. S.
*8TU, 'NnJ.
it. 10.
15,
B, na^.
^
This
D,
f^^'T*
Jiitirttah
Cfl
The name
^'
Shantul
is
is
^^^
*2a
Heb. *2X\
in Berak.
ii.
7; fem.
^^ '^
Critical Notes.
a, C, S, '2iy2.
tryn ^x
TS'iy
c^v
's"?
12.
C, CO.
13.
ATI
erroneooiily repeats
ia
may be
ms
[pa^narcAa]
*2"iN2
;]^S3
pip
:3
Tybai.
m p*^^ '-^'^
ms;"?
pmn
In Gittin L
5,
*3"15<D
reads,
mx3Ty3.
[opxa*], for
11.
It
ms
n3i
adds,
nr3n8<3
X'm
X'n
C, G,
JF,
"13
cnn-x
8.
D'X3n.
nsiS.
D*o'n
n3T3
:x'2t:"i
"?^n x-.pr!n
D":23rj*3
;c*^a
'xon ^^n
Or the MSS. may have a defective reading of the statement that " 77n
[was of the sons of Ne'ariah, whose name is found] 2*22*11 ^l^l^"
iv. 42\
He is so described in the chain of esoteric
( 1 Chron. iiL 23
Qabbalah by R. Abr. of Granada 'c. 1300) in nmJ!3 n'"i3 {Litrod.). But
the former explanation is preferable.
;
^n
is
CeWiJX)
is
found in Jud.
The fonu
considered equivalent.
For
'Ed.
'XO'J'
'^'^ is
1).
I.
The name
(Surh.
gives
I.
273;
iv.
416.
LXX,
2a;xai,
but also
On
It
the
may be remarked
^anfiat).
as
meaning of S.U)DUCEe.
many
that in
LXX
forms,
as
'ASecra-dKafi,
'AnKepdv, 'Pe^eKKa,
letters.
a. 259).
is
k.t.X.,
favour of deriving the word from p'"lV (as against pHs; in accordance
leptiov.
Cadoq 'Hv
A\X' ovk
ivififivav
8e koI 2a8ovK
ovroi iv
ttj
ns
tov
rovvofia Kara t6
iTTiardrov
avrojy
'
Aboth
Greek usage
I.
testifies to
pHV
itself
pHX
with
88,
by preserving the
though by no means
"uberall", as
cd.
3).
pnv
is
14.
and
in the
ii.
358, 382.
and margin,
commentary
laiD ^yn'^
fj-'DiD
idV? d^om hv
N!?ni n^^yn
ni'p^Vn
"rh^i'i
i<"iD
d^o''
Q':\i>)
nan
Baba B.
S has
ei''DV Cj-'DIOTl
51^^*
(on
in nnx
p^*'? ;nt:''?t'i
Bar
S., SroriEJ'm,
(cf. <B)
roDp
.(im) iino
here and in
18.
% At, C, D, E, np^nC'
19.
C,
A
It
IV. 2.
'nD
is
&c. (against
JF,
adds
is'or
pi'-di'
niD'pna
121
b.
N!?nv
N^ni)
\^-\^'on
'13
i"?
im idh
iiriD
nOK '31^
mp^HD.
"13
I'-x
omitted in
im
pnn"?
isb'*
iv. 9.
S^S.
A, B, F,
D, A, bar
(Zech.
mo^na
b''
viii.
S.)
16),
(!r,
Hp^DE'D.
noiV.
but
\vith the
comment
note
nViJ^Dai
in T. J. Tha'an.
Critical Notes.
PEREQ
II
1.
ph
Dnxn
is:
N^nsj^ h::
v'l
(and likewise of
JF,
i62 irnXSn ni
nWSJ^II"'
"-nai
nx"i3
N^!::'
nrkj**
nhdij tt'^ii
The above passages are cited from 33 B has here a hiatus of nearly
two pages which has been filled up by a later hand. Bar S. remarks
" but I myself have two accurate and pointed copies of the Mishnah which
were written in Jerusalem the Holy City, and it is written in them
;
mSDni
JlK'iy?
nSIS."
He
jF
reads
mxsn,
refers to his
mxsn
'13
miDn
c, D, E,
JF,
c, D, E,
nn^ny b^
C (omitting
nst, for
Si,
2.
E, W'b^v vn^
"3
nxn
only,
I
i
.
wi-itten
is
it
r\\^')V?
p'jyi ni^'o
and
12);
b^
psB'.
so HKll in
'^pDiyn.
Read 77n
line.
ni^'DD.
is
Middoth
^vithout
'^.
ii.
4.
Vn> ....
j^pDiy
wbwn)
\'pD)Vn.
n^^oyn.
^3X roVO.
form
5.
Tl2D and
places.
rhv^b VX
n),
omits
as
The
''i'hv^
variation
(
= "'JX
may have
n?yD).
prn
"?3X
y;"nn
ni^'yni
'i:
'1
b^^^
n'pijbiJi
"]2'?^n
Nini
ipin
'i
Dnb nsbnnji
nnnn
j^^jd
n"pi
n^an
n-sin"?
jptn
Di^i'-i^j
^^m
"py
lopbnoi
.!?'?^^
"i
innsi
Aboth
II.
R. Hillel was distinct from and of later date than the great " Hillel."
(But see Sanh, 98 h, 99 a.) Cf. Jost's Gesch. des Judenthums, &c., A. 125,
note S where "R. Jose ben Joezer" ('Ed. viii. 4) la distinguished from
" Jose ben Joezer."
a,
% F have "jD^y.
(S.,
A, B,
C, D,
^, A, B, ^tJ^S^XtJ^.
D, Q,
C,
Q,
S omit
it.
A has
n"i^2'S ^\X^.
(&, JF,
the note
nn
pioyi tiid
nDx'?3
")e:'3'''i
*l'?
mnx dvm
-losn ^x
nmo
.min
"'
T'-n
A,
(cf.
iF,
'j-inn
D1p31.
rt^tJ'
cites this
V"r\ n"s<
7.
NOtr
!?xi
name
"H
of
|0n *1^J
Berak. 63 a:
Cf.
nvniND'
n-'H
^ISpX nSpXI
^ISDy nStoyi
N*ni
hv |nn ninac
MidrashSh)
nnN3
n^!?T
-nninK
l^^i
nti'S
.(A)
8.
iDJ<n
"id
S) DSHD.
*in.
n"?
1^('''12".
A, \i^^^
133
svd:i n:Dn
'pon
'?3
77n
yo::'^^
is
Cf.
HCOn
in
"O
Baba M.
nn'-t^'''
H^p
k'^
ms'^nnn
x'pna KDpi
v. 11.
nilD.
D'^^H
R. Ephraim (see
Hl^/b TTlin
HIID
'IDj
A, B, c, D, E, C,
9.
10.
with points
12.
cf.
13.
nmn
yT[\T\
Rabb. note on
text
c?, iF,
For
''35<
Sheq.
xi. 1).
nxn
iv. 7
(note
iii.
^) cf.
V^'^r\> 'I
p.
IW/j
(54),
i.
5),
exactly correspond-
line X"3.
Rosh ha-Sh.
Hll^
q, nain n!l1D---
as.
^Xy") (Berak.
11),
See
n^L^'y
ity^^x
Baba
11.
8;
"\
nm
ns
B. ix.
1.
For the
>JK r\^'\\
in | 12.
Critical Xotes.
U.
A, B. C. E, :'^an
oat,
J^^^C^ "inrn
(for
is
S5r} as here.
15-
ynn
found in Thamid l
Cf.
13.
16.
IS.
a, C, D,
omit*
-i:
and
nVH
\^:
nr^
against c;
3 h^ Him
5tt3iy
10.
15.
C. D. e.
^Pror. xxri
3,
J^.
Aboth R. X.
>*^n "V.
xvx.^
mar
Isr.
pr.v
R.
^N
ci D:n n^Vp
n.
in
nounces in favour of
C, n:n ns:r.
Aboth L
B, C, r, E. F,
V>
A:=a,
nc^ TVthv.
2).
brieflv, "pl-S
I'"?;'.
^IV
13.
;'Si.
B. i'lV
Aboth III.
PEREQ
1.
ni^
(for
A reads,
nnilD
nH v^, with
% E, Yi6)
III
nn^n
ix.
10; Qinnim
in Shebi. n.
iii. 2.
nrOD.
33,
1.
(for ]i6)).
n1, omitting
a more natural
"ISJ?.
N3 Nin pxo
\iih)
HK'in nipDtt
*i
-KDin
Kin
2.
, nis^D
nvn? H^ny
^di
ny^ini
D^l^X
^3^k
sin noi
ina trnpn
D''3!?n *d!?
(in com7?i.),
A, C, D, E, bar
- At) mentions
3.
A*
(not
4.
A,
A* At remark
S.,
s,
S.,
citing Rashi,
5.
AVith note t
7.
a, bar
8.
B,
JF,
S.,
\iib)
I'pin
[ij''''T
in
JF,
cf.
nifi!:V
A,
is
Cf. 0*0
bu'
adds
an interpolation
1, l'?DXEi>
C, D, E, ,
his
nt^'ScT.
D,
"
'xn^^n
(S, JF,
njsoni.
D, E, F, vhv }nn3.
ni3K'1''JJ>.
Rashbam, and
Berak. vii.
"I3!!?'?'3.
a reading
that "1^
A*,
I^y^l.
lOK' ^3K>in^i
so bar
"I'pin
sin
^K* nK-iiD.
And
nbo
inian
'o).
xnan
Critical Notes.
9.
smnn
D,
E, ^"pann 123.
J3,
n23.
nma.
The number 5 may be connected with t313'J'* D^npX 3lp3, and the
number 3 with '13 imiJXI (3, A, I), E)j or vice versa (C, D, JF, bar S.).
The httter reading is the more likely to have arisen as a corruption, since
the number 3 naturally associates itself with the idea oi judgment, beiuj;
the number of a jH ri^3 (Rosh ha-Sh. ii. 9; iii. 1 Sanh. i. 1); and moreover
"ID D^n'pX 2"ip3 is in the Psalm of the third day of the week (Thamid, end).
;
this
reading places
nt^Sty
'^sx^y
1).
"13
p,3
nnpn
U'rhta,
toisj^^
Berak. 6 a)
(cf.
'^.s*
m\^i---
A*, At
10.
^^
ti*''X-
i^mmi
C'i^.
Friedmann remarks
At,
'^D-ij
e has
nr
n^J
nSi n
twice,
in Xeziq.
iir.
mo^no nm
and omits
10,
1-2.
D, nn'fD 3>^n
13.
14.
reads
'13
and
VD'yO'iJ'
in 15
where bar
14),
has "iTV^X
^H
n*D-
|^''S
b.
nmip
'13
iscn
nsT
inn3n'J' ^31;
px'j*
bzY
20.
pnno
R.
Isr.
vEj^yo psti'
:)3i.
mentioned in Midrash
and to his own two MSS.
in 13 are
S. refers to
n3i:^'n
^31; omits
and
also in B,
iii.
as
^31
ah ^l^rt^
Hab.
nn*3 has
(i"*?")},
"iTJ^'pS
Sh.,
and
10
Ahoth III
A, C, D, E,
16.
nD333, in 'Erub.
dB
x. 10;
and
in
Zabim
''^'2/,
ill. 2, JTinb, for
"pro
ecclesiae
Jiliis" (Surh.).
17.
is
confirmed by T. J. Peah
i.
(cf.
T. J. Sanhedr. X. 1):
syii
^'ti^
mini
Lower down
As
in
nnn
n^js n^^i^n^
min
in Peah,
"13
pliart
^y
n^x^n^i
p^iisn
is
n^^n^
5<S^,
is
omitted by
% C, A* (nJC'On
n^in
'n"'K>3
US
^X).
D''3S
but condemned
Rashbam
'lU
in the
*nK^*o pi D'-niD
u'^ii'v^
it'3
K'^t^
N^s min
a"j?N
For
ra^DHI,
'3
reads
"i;^
the
18.
mint^n?
ninntJTl
Ct^l?
niJ")
Bar
S. cites this
mo
reading in
that
^^^ hp
^in-
is
former
Dis^D
It
mn
jsaS
ins*?
^^1^c^>
may be suggested
n^pa in
ini
-ic'kt
ns
may have
arisen fi-om
original form,
19.
% nny, for V
im,
'in
an
11
Critical Notes.
omits
'^
21.
"13
tlie
in ^,
which
characterised by brevity
is
Mishnah.
might indeed be thought that mn^ TMU belongs to Israel alone, and
man in general; but why then is Gen. ix. 6 cited in preference to Gen. i. 27, which answers more exactly to t^lDJC' ?
It
not to D^^< or
Dnsn nx xnn^
i^!'n
is
On
text.
in 22
'13
DHi^
(cf.
would
it
ny*!"li
is, "13
is
knoini; whence
ni33
Af notices
A*,
nSxn x-Qjt^
iD^;y D'-n'px
Nin
pisi
n-'Xi
xh Hl^
f]p>n
bni
""^
Dyon
itj'-i^sK'
oSil
and
n^n^
so Abarbanel,
X^ll
'^*
who
mj^
|"'XT
'jc
|i"'3n
^^
D^^^x
tnxi ^nj
D^a
Dl7pJ^< nT\r\^ i3
i.
27.
dm^x
n'?^^3 j3i
mm-
A omits
24.
A, B, C, D, E, F,
'13
nnn.
33,
JF, r\\i^V^r[
r\^')i^r\
is
X^S^l
'3
m Bible MSS.
23.
31-1
n'^nbx d'?:;3
i^
th^z
XEj'yx n^
Modem
'di"?3
i^'y D'-n'px
ixt^'y
":^'''^
v^'o^
\')2
mTi'' nn-'n
i33''n
-Dipnn
"-D
^y
nr:K'D3
x"?
!?3X r\^v^n
The
reference
discussed.
xi*Ei>
is to
'n3
*?":
21-1 -d'?
y\1.
i3ij>
xini
ponu
Bar
vnim
.
!?"t
S.
adds
'?3pEJ'
nti^yon
3n
rr'Dini D"3Dnni
n'-j)
'^j'
^a^?
^J^'y^:n
ibnn* D7^*3 1.
Ahoth in.
j[2
N? 73S
'37
r]^]3Dn
'n
noib
2n
n-c'V^n
^s^ ^3ni
2-in
:y'3V
The 6r
in question is j)i-obably
attributed to Rashbam.
At
it
in
25.
A, B, C, D, E, e,
Kelim xxiv. 7.
DninS
JF,
in
Tarah
'ID
xii.
a, HDDn, and so
28.
P, before 'ODH
jF,
found
i.
8,
Makshir.
and accord-
vi. 5;
is
NDDH
xiii. 3),
{(B) is
distinguished by
in
Baba M.
or NttDH.
an interpolation.
its brevity.
vii. 5;
Nega.
In Xega.
The true
vil. 2.
vri. 2,
for n.
Cf.
Surh. renders
X'
"1-
ri1*in
rii5^:ni
is
C, OOp*^/.
for 1310D\
For IDDD^C HO
in
nVDp3D
plural
2 (Surh., inyiD).
27.
bv.
found again
IDJ?*!? is
The
Dp:sni.
'D1J
(^,
and margin of D,
only) is illustrated
by Chagig.
nn:;Da p^i"?nn
Dmj inn
Dmna nib^yoi
i.
13
Critical Notes.
[n
pi
The
of
8,
a
VI.
isDD-'ir
no ^y
as in Surh.).
;n!?
is
tj'
taken from
Surh. reads jn
5 (Surh.
is
(cf.
|n,
% where
but
ed.
Vnns-|3,
it is
nnnDn
(mnai/m
numbered
princeps
\T\
n"d)
N"' (instead
JIT).
Shabb. xxiii.
1), in
Berak.
msnan).
At the end
z'b^
nvnyni nisDDni
of note n read
*[
IP for 71 P.
He
Ahoth IV.
PEREQ
^
7.
is
here defective.
B,
33,
A,
iivb (Makk.
PP''2DD
8.
IV.
D^j'n ^i^^n
Cf.
^).
nnsi.
TOnpO H^TD
"inX*!
inX
Il^ltJ^
ii. 6).
t''^{ is
quoted by bar
S.
whom B
a,
9.
1).
n3.
So
Ahoth, cited
except Dna, for n2.
JF,
^&.,
n30
linn'?.
B,
33,
m Miclrash
ei^Leb
note
Ze&
C, A, B, C, D, DtJ^yM.
33,
nnn
Sh.),
hjnnb moy
See
CJ'yn ^X
iinn"?.
In Nedar. 62 a, the saying is put into the mouth of a pHV *13, and does
not appear to be quoted as Mishnah. In the passage alluded to the
principle, Na*?
nU3n
nnnSO
P11D1
down, and
it is
added
DDB'^
HDi
D^a
nnn lani
v'p"i
tj'oriB'Dn
-my
D'^'V
nrn'?
D^iyn |d
cnai
nmip
-ipy: "pin
^b
n:^'y
-ijdis
DtJ'yn "pni
itryjcj'
pnv
Dnn
K'lip ^d3
^2-1
^^
'?njnn'?
k^x ^Dni^:
v'2xy
Some
'13
lines earUer in
of God,
perhaps
D^/bti^S
Dn3
Dti'n.
lllh.
On
Nedarim
min
is
found, T\ ^<'^^^
11.
(ed.
nc-yn ha
k^s^ li'K'^a
*lTy^7X ^1*1
moy
for a
Lemberg)
name
reads,
c,iF,pDy:3by2:;!3C, D, '13 ^7
15.
F,
17.
^I^nn
33,
D^31t5
Begaleel to be
tJ'\
JF,
W^D)
b, ppy t^yo?.
(TTin
niririD (%
DnSDH nDnX
^, ^, a, B, C, B)
is
allowed by R. L. ben
I'pK'S (e,
of E. al-Fez is
nD"p
N-nir.
Bar
jF,
S.
F) has
quotes
15
Critical Kotes.
Aboth R. N. xxvir.
which
as adopting "l?w'3,
is
9, D^tJ*3S
xvii.
X^
19. 20.
ing n.
4,
S, 'Xinj) without
21.
A,
23.
KD3^
nL"y
j-'pp-it:
niD N^
Read, SIDinS
In
words ^Xniy
how
jn^v DJ-in^DiD
^mVi
repeat-
B, conjecturally:
33,
Kings
nnillSl)
rnSi ^jcn
'"'dij
the mistake
38
Twhv
DTKJ'in
KT'DIDI.
"I,
PiNi
6sniy
d"?isi
is
20.
nU33
Lemberg).
(ed,
vii.
sini sn^oied)
ly::' n-'n
7),
"13
instead of
is
d'?1S1
The
(1).
has T for
twice in Xiddah
"I
in
apparently
5,
ri.
but this
may be
accidental.
JF,
once
22; Ezek.
viii. 16).
Surh. has
\'h\r\^,
24.
iv.
by mistake
for TDpIO, in
nyti'
Middoth
iv. 7.
3,
&c.
Cf.
Dan.
16.
26.
17).
The further
found
13''"ISD
7DD; but
it is
pV p?
R. Jonali gives
margin of
said in the
condemned by Abarbanel
with
is
IS).
(see note
(v. 31),
be
13 to
x.)
G re-
concluding, like A,
27.
a, n^nS
33,
B, pT^
pinon
-i^-'jn
in Shabb. vin.
28.
(cf.
n. 6) for
nnin n?D"?m
B,
h]}
HMDX.
min
no'pn.
So B, here and
in 28.
1^^^.
occurs in Gittin
2.
*'?Dn nSD,
without
H.
11. 4.
reads ^IDS
I^^J,
for
plHO
Aboth IV.
16
29.
% reads
rWTQ
On
""^
riljnun
occurs
in the "
tions.
Sotah
iii.
iii. 3.
and favours
5.
diminish (occupation),
in
the
literal
Baba M.
oyo
in
of
vi. 2).
A, ^ISErnC 1^17.
32.
^DV/b
D^
upon the supposed consistencj* of certain allegorising interpretaBut it is a hasty assumption that even the Midrash really decides
for
it
tlie
application to the
gives
clauses (ver.
to the syllabic
^3 and
3, 4)
2-word clauses
(ver. 5),
suggested below.
For the
latter
cf.
)*fr$3P
(4)
(Is.
Iii.
5).
(3)
\>\^'i
D^n^T
nJDi
T'w'n
nm-^3
inty-'i
n*nn
nmsn
'^^yy^
lyr*
mi-in
isK'm
DV^
(5)
1TI3 D^nnnni
r\y\'>'y^r\
is-i^*
nam
r\iyo
^^
17
Critical Notes.
PEREQ
e omits,
I.
l)d>n
"IDI^
V.
HDI.
6.
At describes '13 ni3D I't^'y as found ):h^ Dnunton, but wanting in
most copies of the Misiinaii. It is pi-obably a gloss on 5, as the author
of Af at first supposed, although he afterwards found MS. authority which
him
inclined
"ID
change
to
8.
The order
Af
reckons
133 i6\
nrh)
D'-Jsn
"13
urh:^
i6),
Titi'i
which
C (=Pesach.
only
briefly
D^iyn
D^IS
naJ^S
omits the
I.
'13
5;
has
Zabim
1:1K
pi'iEJ^h
CF, JF),
miV3
t^l Htt'inD
ii. 7.
n3bn3
r^:y3 D^K'ttl
nnino
h>Z\ after
^r:',
k"3.
^KI^'O).
g[
has
hm
(Sheq.
first
ill. 1
Chul. v.
miX3 hm.
n^JJn
3).
ha-Sh.
I.
2).
In Tha'an.
iv. 1
interchanged with
iv. 1.
B'^N
found in Shabb.
Hl))^^ h^)
note \
n^S^ p
p^iy3i
ij-id"?
I'^a-^
e, ntpo^n.
Cf. |n^3
15.
B read
c, D,
14.
pn
3n3'''?
54),
At
A, A*,
(B,
is
NX10 nnx nt
II.
miV3;
21 a) are rejected:
nr^fm
'"i:i
A, ^, , (against R, C, D, D,
10.
sion
Joma
D''i3n nt'on.
At,
'13).
(cf.
nom
n-iK^y
9.
MSS.
nnV3
"13
his opinion.
91
Demai
vii. 1
V,
hS^,
where
Surh.,
or
"ly,
and hv
vi. 7:
repeating
in
MSS.
Cf.
n37n
final
1T1
reads
n,
Ahoth V.
18
n^33n 'T Tt>'}^n. For (X^p) \)'^t2^, in note, p. (50), 1. 12, e has 'p pK^Ot^.
The comments there cited ai'e found in A, but arc attributed to Rashi by
R. L. ben Be9aleel.
16.
and llDt'a
r\V:^\>,
D''D3n
?,
20.
21.
312D, o-0oyyos,
Tahar.
1).
i.
p-ion n^an
jd'?
JF
nsnoo) !l5nDX3
s!?i (for
is
7^m
also a ve7'b.
Jii
''XI^DC^'
miyon
Sheni
K1^t^'^ n"?!
Thcrum.
6; 'Erub
is
reads (13^^11
for
i.
Shabb. xxi.
discipks,
W^^a
cf.
VIII.
'13
1);
'Ed.
3, 12;
I.
In Cliag.
11.
2,
Ilillel in
Ohol.
m pmv
^3
v.
of
inis i-'sn
D''C'n
Parah
Cf.
of Ilillel;
H"!"!
3;
i.
f^^i
uv^
'3cr
vii. 8.
3),
J^phVib
l^'"!
'^:/^
'n,
Qnm
ib^K
IpSni xb (M.
n"m ^'''n nm
viii. 1, 6);
is
in
a few cases
3; 3, apparently by mistake,
\i^i2'c>
-17
On
nn^n
at
&
ithi:^
At has
MSS.i
DHIO (Kethub.
n.Dpi'pnD
hegiuuiug
in
vi. 5;
3).
(Berak
njDDn,
|*nt*>
Under
4).
nny
T^y
^^ mOB^D.
viii. 7, T'
v. 2,
5:
n"2i K'"3
iii.
I.
L*'"3
reversed (Peah
in
^l
11.
opinion of tSliamai
opinion of
or absorb,
sjyonge,
)r\^'ii
25.
('Ed.
nD3
^Dti' KV*
(like
ybv
nODH^
iF, A, B) connect
XV* with the HI J.
See note \
here defective.
sometimes used
B, , D,
<!,
nODH
Dnoi^3.
18.
is
\7\i^
''72J^1
'>7JJ'
word
172^1 vt^, a
C, D, ( (against
17.
with the
MSS.
varies in the
rrn npibn?2\
col. 7
from the
Critical Notes.
Tho dissidenco
14
6,
where
it is
of
27.
SI is
28.
rcnn
(Jc
'hhn)
here defective.
(cf.
Dyb
minimised
is
n'^D
For
^^^
themselves
Ilillel
in
Shabb.
nn nm
n'>...
said:
IpSm nS
N*Sx
Shamai and
1<)
'1^'\
(note k):
vivo'pnD 'n
ny-i
.n"n ^^^
py
its
n?3
29.
Abraham
means,
]^y
p3
.'13
is
mentin order
ending
rint^ "iNaV.
Sotah
Cf.
m:n
Megillah in.
On
S).
the collocation of
b, b', cf.
Baba B.
14 6
We put desolation
30.
Mishnah
31.
next
to desolation,
The expression
is
D^DiJ'nK' D2*2X
quoted in Pesach. lYla.
^:nn^'
may be read
as
Qal
(Ps.
and comfort
is
li.
to
comfort,
IS),
or Niphal.
This
In Thamid
n>2), omittino
vii. 3,
mnm
13''D''3.
The prayer '13 pvi ^n^, which does not belong especially
to Aboth,
would come most naturally at the end. Accordingly we are
led to conjecture that the following paragraphs, though forming
an admirable conclusion, did not originally
Aboth
11.
Ahoth
20
whom however
from
"Tl "TI
V.
distinguished in Chagig. 9
is
Moreover
b.
3 are
the
thi^ee
31
paragraphs
and describes
"13
D"'3D ty as Nn''''"i3,
it
addition.
32.
S[
alone reads
C) read, TlSni
A, C, I'Sni.
Tlie reading
n'?131
J7 (cf.
more modem.
*]1Dni is
n'?m)
variation
variation
in the second.
xii.
H^ H ?*)D1-
ends at
So D, but
^inn
C(?), jFhave
as a gloss
A,
(B^,
upon the
n^*1' instead of
latter.
11.
L.
development;
''inn
nai
PQ
where
117^*1,
Such a reading
corruption of n?D1.
Mnn
may
I conjecture
that n72)
is
as,
became
"'inn
(i)
njnn,
(ii)
(23)
successively,
n?3
was explained by
(or ^'?3)
nn
^
''inn,
""inn,
or njni.
The words
reading'' (see
rh^") n^Di
at the
end
of
3''D.
nnn
Pereq VI
(p.
Ashkcnazic Prayer-Book),
nn^ nn ^^bi
llld)
pm
ni3K nDD?3 nb
("id
nroi na
xp^'^D,
may
margin
3
at the
end
of
'i3 7^b^^
3*d
whereas
leaves
it
.)
in the
unpointed (the
r\b-\DV
Pereq V.
into the
21
Critical Notes.
Tho final clauses, 11300 '13 nJOl not found in Aboth R, N. where
omissions are always significant, since the tendency of the baraitha is to
add and develop may have arisen as a further gloss upon n3 "|7l31. They
add uotliing to tlic preceding, which are complete in form and meaning;
nor can they be said to be in any respect an improvement to the clear and
forcible
ending
nn:i.s
n^y^c
disS
A ddenda.
22
ADDENDA
The paragraph on the Ages of Man, which may be regarded
H^
development of
as
as bar S.
13, in
as, "l3yi
nO
on
p.
(as
remarked by A)
(43),
or
(6)
and omitted
nm'pr'?
yp
ivo'^
^3
ny"?
-im^iDS
nn33-)D^
:-iDn
:
vyicw
vihv
innsii'ci
my
oyo
t2p
bii''
nxiv
3S
np^
nmn'pDi
:nt^'^
iins
nn'j'x
ijn
y-i
DN
3*?
:imcitj'D3
nioy*
ihia
<D'<
mp
:iny
n3np
:D>:>nrn
|d
nn3
''3
pb
nc'x
Ti
by
^D''
b3n
ip>
nns^
v:;*yo
ps
"t^'c^
D-c'bmi
i6
wv^'C':)
D^xij
in3T
px
:1n:y:^D1
i:;'^:
nns
njyb
:3*t^'^n
ijb
:"imi3EJ'J3i
iriwS
by
dj
1D133
3C'nj
tr>N
itj'Dj
Doyo
px
133b
m
nti'N
nnnsb
p-i
VJ3
nx
"bx
n-'n^
3'j'no
bi
rj^y3
ibxjj'
mnc'
"-s
vnirtj'
ex
n^-I
xc'ob
pn
miD
d>:id:^
iyJ3
jybi
'3K'm
yj
pn
D''c:*Dn
no
D-'bn
>by
rj3C'b
y33:i
inivnb*
i3-)nb
n-n
*by
D^y-i
D^c'bc^
:"'j'o
b3
no
iDiob t3
3^0
-113
n3n
D^o^y:
bsj
pb
D'y3:^'
no
:yib
3iTy^i
b3n
p3
pii^xn
ib
D*J3>
D>y3"ixb
D*y-i
'<i^
|n
'<:2
hii^"
poip'-
^bi
|n
bipb
inx
:vry
iL"3n*i
n*j'p
nx
iDiD
DniD
:inDn'??33
i
X'y pb
Dnt^'y
ip'?n3 i^'^
I'poy
33::^^
b&?i
6p)
n1'pt<t^'D
nip
n?^x nb^'ni
rhv
np
L!''3ni
3'?i
lU'V: DN1
;n
i'?3n
'cv
nnni<
i"i3P
pb
tj'on
rynvb
p
nn
i3b3
pN
;:
23
Cntical Notes.
poem
Tliis
is
Abarbanel, and
in
The
^i
'13
'13,
of the Ages.
we might
In line 6 b
Abarbanel reads
VT*
'13
\'2
refrain, to
7p,
pointed,
it is
ii.
iu Canticles loc.
omitting
8),
In 15 a
cit.
*3.
In addition to the section '13 C'On p, we find in MSS. (A, 1^, C, &c.)
or less extraneous matter (Bcrak. 17 a; Qiddush. 70 a; Derek Ereg i
Masseketh Kallah, &c.) placed cither within or after Pereq V. In A the
more
'13
TV
nn
iry^^s
Mr:)]}
i6
fix
nx
iy-iT
Q*]2
'-\
'pDia'?
nrxc' n'cx
py
ry
m:n pi
iix
i"?
x::*i:n
'iX
X3X
nit:
DC'i
DV1
3it3
-pDiy
"piji
X3vy
nymh d^jd ry
mjn p 'dix
d^13
in^^px
."piDS "pDisn
nn^o'? '?3n
nn nm
nc'iyi
310 inD3n3
bi
minn
^D'?t^' 'X
in
"py
rninx
nx
nils'?!
'j^d
insi3 in^'px
ncnn
o'piyn
p
:
D'-pn^*
^c'
p3L"
yii
fnc-j'
ni-^n
i3-j'
i^n*:;'
i^
i'?
/nS^ n3DD3
ty
of
attributed
is
to
3V0
Dt^'3
'^3
ri2-\r{
n3
x^B'py
min
"I
Dnj"?
niDb
n^ny'?
x^jjn
't
Jelmdah ben
the text to
min*
laaji
-pn ^^UjT\
n^iJB' x\n
in
tiiD
bnrj' ^o n:;'x
jxnb
nj:in
nr^h Dnx
?iidi
minn
iboyi
v'pyi
"1 ^^*Jn
-itdo 'dix
"i
innsi"J3
'pyi
ly^'ii 'pni
nn^nc'^
pJ
'din*
xcu^i
nilH^
ynn''
"i
i"?
]n
n^'vb
pL'-'D DC'
cm
d^jd
'?3l:*
"pDia
'-I
]:h
-iroa 'ix
'nix N*tt*n
:'i3 'j'on
A remarks
^nnnn
'ij
^^i
Pereq VI ends
mences
^
iu
with
13 J3
J3 p,
'13
XH XH
The word
3ni3n
""JX
nyiB'.
\2,
and
and an J2
'13
ir)
\)'il
^n\
which com-
MISHNAH.
PIRQE ABOTH.
CHAPTER
I.
Some
of the
Moses received the Thorah from Sinai, and delivto Jehoshua', and Jehoshua' to the elders (Josh,
Jud. ii. 7), and the elders to the prophets, and the
xxiv. 81
They said
prophets to the men of the Great Synagogue.
up many
Be
deliberate
and
raise
in judgment
three things
disciples; and make a fence^ to the Thorah.
1.
ered
it
Impose additional
restrictions so
that whereas
man must
sanctify the
instant
my
y^O
(III.
20;
VI. 6) lies at
the root of
Its application
in
binb pS'-Din
connexion
Eashi on Gen.
with
ii.
2,
ha-Shan. 9 a),
which compare
where it is said
(K.
of
its
commencement, the
"on
the seventh
it
day"
to a hair's
For
itself.
than
that
I,
II,
where
Adam
it
3''''D,
Tempter,
Eve as part of
command, which was only.
representing this to
God's
Thou
iii.
3).
it
(Gen.
ii.
17;
PIRQE ABOTH.
2G
2.
Shime'on lia-Qaddiq^ was of the remnants of the Great
Synagogue.
He used to say, On three things the world is
Simon
of
Seine Personlichkeit
denken
Dunkel
der
spatern
der
Fahel
Justus.
ziu-iick"
(Jost,
a,
39
69 a,
a,
He
have
to
served
as
and to
have gone out in procession to meet
"Alexander of Macedon," as Jaddua'
high-priest for forty years,
is related (Jos.
done.
Ant.
xi.
8.
have
5) to
and
ing of a temple in
"Alexandria of
by his son Onias,
or jVainJ (^ in Menach. xiii. 10).
Egypt "
Simon
But
has
= Caius
DihpQi
A.
who attempted
359),
3.
Caligula.
Jost,
up his
Jerusalem.
Cf.
to set
tah
3.
tesdienstllchen Yortrage
T. J. So-
the date
36), gives
Ps.lxxv. 4; Prov.
See Nedar. 32
xii. 2. 5; and by
Simon II, also son of Onias.
The latter Simon is identified in Bar
Abbeloos
of
Luke
SiVaioy.
et
ii.
(col.
25,
who
is
of
out in a striking
of
Bereshith
Wisdom
world,
it
at the
viii.
brought
begiuuiug
Thorah,
Piabbah.
(Prov.
is
or
was God's
Aboth in. 23),
1),
(cf.
snm minn
D7iyn nx.
to'-no
r^'^n
n"npn
p
cre-
concepts in the
mind
of the Creator;
said,
is
no
Eli'ezer
means the
service
and
sacrifices
of
Megillah 31
Cf.
Pii-q.
way
agent or instrument
22, ed.
characterised as
The
a.
71vfxeu>v
Cf.
ITim.
A kingdom
1; and(?)
is said,
world.
others to
ix.
15.
iii.
The eulogy in
Ecclus. I. has been applied by some
to Simon I, son of Onias, called Simon
i. ii.
p.
b. c.
Juden,
d.
221202
Joma
said in
is
ix. 4),
Kindnesses*'.
R. Eliez.
b,
Tha'anith 27
xvi. it is
b. In
proved from
Babel?
;:
I.
2,
27
3.
3.
and
Heaven be upon
the fear of
let
not enjoined in
is
im
,min
':\s
you.
iqmties (Berakoth 5
The
vh'^n
bar
S.)
vir
magnus in
Berakoth
(T. J.
saj'iugs of this
may
Pereq
perhaps be
theii-
superior
antiquity.
This
IT. w-ith
It
acceptable (Hos.
K. Eliez. xvi).
offer (Pirq.
to the
to be restricted
at
(Peah
as a
1),
in
this
4, 5; nr. 9,
'Orlah
10;
Middoth i. 2.
s Serve
God from pure motives,
with a view which is not that of
'Edioth
VI. 2
it
the original
the
later to prevent
like
vriil
principal
and be not
voluntary workers
suggestion that
its
and
5,
ii.
world,
this
IV.
last
neighbour." While
joyed
and sometimes
bar S. on the
as
his city.
undefinable
same time
I.
of
requital
the
not
It is
said (A
I.
connected in Aboth E. N.
is
to
is
not mentioned
i. 5), is
b).
^'>^
1D1D
title
So
not, labom".
was added
but
saying,
future
generations
all
it is
But
(jedaqah, as haviug
greater than
and property,
and poor, dead and living. It
includes the duties of sympathy (xat-
rich
Tuv,
Kom.
15)
xii.
of
attending the
Thorah
it
itself
(Sotah 14
a)
for
God
iii.
clothed
21),
and
Adam
"he
'
'
<B
is
dc,
be,
it
saying
original
pro-
but
Be
not,
Antigonus inculcates disinterested service without expressly enunciating any doctrine positive or negaof
tive concerning a future state
d'c.
retribution.
He
may
" in
be double
in the world to
with which
Crit.
Note on
The question
iv. 9).
raised in Sotah v. 5
"
is
hn'a
buried
him
xxxiv.
6).
He who
occupies himself in
all
his in-
(lb
np)
N*?
(Job
xiii.
15),
which
PIRQE ABOTH.
28
4.
by
illustrated
is
vh
np)
^"H (T7
(Is.
4 to
II.
13 are
In
as <rvvlyyoi.
6,
compendiously:
given
The
Ixiii. 9).
"pairs"
and they
the
In Ghagigah
from Moses.
is
2,
it.
each
to
The sayings
teachers
wise.
attributed to particular
not, according
are
the
to
Cf.
them.
pair
and
is
places in their
Aboth
11
IV. 26.
Luke
Cf.
It
common-
Acts
39;
X.
xxii.
3.
determined.
riority,
ab
of
gives
bcth
or
din,
vice-president.
Herzfeld {Gesch.
dates
their
b. c.
as
11.
(a)
140)
follows
(/3)
Je-
The
Hillel, 30.
()
temple)
Zunz
last
date
(=100
destruction of the
given in Shabbath 15 a.
is
assuming a hiatus
after
c),
Antigonus
140 130;
50;
(e) z.
Zeit. des
(Sotah 47
explained
in
\2 ^an'J'
K'''X.
with
ctxoXtj.
vii. 1)
By some it
It
is
J.
Up
is identified
said (Them. 15 a)
Moses.
ceased "
a).
as a learner.
;1l^''?
pia (Baba Bathra 165 a).
That the hearer, especially in the case
yin
was
but
J.
of humility.
The posture
21a:
"
as a sign
of a teacher
discussed from a
is
view in Megillah
point of
Whence
it
is
it
that a
Eab
must not
sit
Herodes.
but
It is
because
it
"
4 G.
I.
29
{His own
G.
Eab, to receive
law,
tlie
other to announce
and in the
According to
it.
meant that he
stayed. ..Easy
things
That
sitting.'^
time
the
it
Gamahel
of
the
for
11.
28
sit
siibsellia,
a)
requii-ed.
yvvaiKi).
(rf/
much
they meant,
luife,
enth-ety
is for
woman
is
is
SONS."
How then
out her
title to
...5id,
V.
Her work
1-4).
16
Matt.
dence of the
xiii.
2)
the
is
it
of
was more
n3*C'', sessio,
(ii.
8).
The
book Esther
might either stand or sit (MegiUah
rv. 1).
On the mutual respect of
Eab and Thalmid see Aboth rv. 17.
^^ This saying might be appUed
to a
man's wife in particular (as in 6),
public
or to
reader
woman
of
the
in general,
Cf. Eccl.
dence of
vii.
28.
woman
Man
in
/cat idav/j.a^oi>
p2i
its
free to
Cf.
in^nn:
>2
Women,
and
study in
him
Berakoth 17
\soa
'Mjnsai
and children
slaves
a,
w^:
xn'kr''J3
are
men-
5.
Benedictions, bless
not
made me
a gentile... a slave... a
Paul
St
ovK
?pi
'lov5aios
dovXos ou5e
ov5^
eXevdepos,
Women
The Thorah
15
ii.
send her
to
eh iare
ways,
husband
he returns.
takes prece-
vaiious
is
^wdrjaeTac
'ih
In
might be convenient
woman make
shall
salvation?
reKvoyovias (1 Tim.
rrjs
till
it
less to
who
whereas the
Thorahmuch
not to learn
teach
leave her
certain cases
man
the
of those
his neighhour s
less
nesses
(Dny)
but
rights of property.
heritance,
"
filiae
28).
iii.
if
they had
the property
aluutur, et
(Kethuboth xni. 3
filii
;
their
In the case of
is
in-
small
mendicabunt
BabaBathra
ix. 1).
PIRQE ABOTH.
30
Hence
wife).
man
the wise
Gehinnoni^^.
7.
Jebosbua' ben
Peracbiab
Make
said'^
associate
13 Cf. vihv
On
14
Little of
importance
is
known
of this
and
of a learned society;
trasted with
it
is
vii. 4).
is
compilation of books.
Hence the
dem
buy thyself
gegen
Gesetz
die
mebr Eingang zu
15
Jehoshua*
yerscbaffen."
counsels
man
to
and to associate
worthy companion.
traditional teacher,
with
himself
terpretation of pseudo-Eashi
Dn2D
in-
"Make
con-
|^"l5<n
and
"QH."
or
He who
acquittal.
others, will
thus judges
panionship
23
a),
"Two
16b).
one"
Thorah as in other
matters, since when two study toge(Eccl. iv. 9), in
'
'
written in the
a).
I^WI
Wlin
which
is
tm-ned
2"in
(Berakoth
Nay, more,
(.Ter.
"a sword
is
1.
36),
against
"
of
men
of learning.
It is
sometimes
'i2r
The saying
in
but
the
month
Judgment, Thishid
of
Ehez.
(Pirq. E.
17
Woe
to the wicked
neighbom"!
(Nega'im
as
n?D
fire to
woe
xii.
6).
to his
The
a).
18 Cf.
usually
vii.) to JD^J.
means
The word
give up
to despair,
I.
70.
31
them.
hope of a thing; but the caution ig
not to presume upon immunity. Even
here,
upon
thee.
clause at the
viii.
mean
dahar,hvii^onesh,
In a narrative which
there
is
intro-
pHJ
Eome
Gemara remarks
impartiahty which he
recommends.
5 b), out
opposition to the
a
death before the condemned had been executed, he appealed to his colleague, who charged
false witness to
who
The
T. J.
Sanhedrin vi. 9.
Machazor Yitry gives also the
See
referring
to
his
alter-
colleague
Sanhedrin
was
vi.
4,
blood,
of
of
Sadducees, put
learned
Jehudah
presence of Shime'on.
occasion
when
that,
requires,
^^
The
Be not
be one of impartiality.
one of the
litigants,
While the
there-
who
fore as partisans
suit is
either party
with favour, but should examine both
sides thoroughly and
suspiciously.
When
it is
; whether
as having been
proved to be in the right, or as having
jiaid the penalty of wi'ong-doing. The
as innocent
difficult
phrase D''J''nn
''2'))]},
" dis-
it is
explained of those
who
a,
whei*e
teach the
PIRQE ABOTH.
32
the witnesses
not thyself
known
government^.
to the
A slight change
would give the meaning,
Gerichtes
mehrfacher
litigants to deceive,
dieses
of reading
ist
in
habe.
"disposers of
pleaders
renders
sei nicht
Sach-
andem
Eich-
dem bestimmten,
tem
^1
2-41)
gen) in
gegeniiber."
Shema'iah
and
Abtalion,
who
were said to be descendants of Sancherib or of Haman (Gittin 57 b; Sanhedrin 96b), are identified (?) with the
Sameas
phus,
(cf.
who
and Pollio
p. 3)
of Jose-
1. 1):
"But
above
all
the rest
for
when Jerusalem
way
aU."
of reproach to
In the account
Sanhedrin 19
a,
Jost (Gesch. a
or arcA-judges,"
als eia
of the trial in
offenbar
dem
einzi-
Jerusalem gesprochen,
vor
lud.
man
wie denn
den Muth
nen
MitgUeder an
ihre
Pfiicht
zu
erinnern."
2"
his son
(Eph.
iv. 28).
E.'Aqibasaid:
thy sabbath weekday, and be not dependent upon the creatures" (Shabbath 118 a; Pesachim 112 a, 113 a. Cf.
Ecclus. xL 28, 9). A man should hii'e
himself out to 'abodah zakah, rather
than become dependent upon his fellows. Not Uteral idolatry, it is added,
but sei-vice which' is strange to him.
Flay a carcase in the street and receive
pay;
priest),
1012.
I.
12
Abtalion
said,
may
perchance ye
Ye
33
and be exiled to
come after
of Heaven be pro-
and the
and the
die^^,
disciples that
Name
faned.
8).
la-
bour, and do
rich.
all
"work"
if
to do even if
a chau-."
she brings
still
work
him
E. Eli'ezer says. If
a hundred she
must
sions lewdness.
says, that
Hillel,
iv. 12).
learned
i.
6; Isaiah
E. Jonah con-
Pesachim 87 b).
1;
Dr Michael
Plato, Repub.
347 d:
eTret KivSvveijei,
OQv
fir)
el
man
ther
the
first
praise thee,
ovm mouth"
man
When
niDin "iNinD,
D'ln'pK
A man
the creatures
St Paul engaged in
"Hate not
manual labour
acted up to the
being
Contrast: "
laborious
work"
The wisdom
man cometh by
of a
opportunity of
and he that hath Uttle business shall become wise. How can he
get wisdom that holdeth the plough?...
they shall not sit on the judges' seat,
leisure:
nor understand the sentence of judgment they cannot declare justice and
judgment and they shall not be found
:
king,
(Pirqe
XI.).
" ne
nimium
bus"
corrupting as
II.
Or:
ni. 8
as dangerous.
James
ii.
Cf.
6.
His sayings
the realm of
heresy,
and inoculate
The
PIRQE ABOTH.
34
Hillel
received from them.
Aharon"; loving peace, and purof the disciples of
Be
said,
Shammai
HilleP' and
13
penalty of imtruth
bibe which
is
name
HistoricaUy re-
death.
is
amongst
with
'"173
min nnO,
bro-
trading
his
it
will
gatekeeper
a moiety went to the
Once he had earned no-
at the schools.
thing,
out.
He
climbed
the
up and sat at the window to hear
words of the living God from Shema'iah
in
and Abtalion. It was sabbath eve
him
covered
snow
the
Tebeth, and
to
three cubits deep. Said Shema'iah
(cf.
which
from
mgs
"l?3ni as pi'el,
ni^J
of
separated
and at
exclusive study,
poorer
be said to him, "Wast thou
earnthan Hillel? " Of his smaU daUy
extreme
Abarbanel)
its
opposite
expressions, nor against the
the too
(cf. Chagigah ii. 1) of
and comparing
more
length, for
unveilingreading
Scriptural.
is
for irreligiousness.
free
studied Tho-
He
untnTth, to im-
He
saj-ing,
is
and
(Joma 35 b).
but
and as the
El. IX):
in Horn.
(2)
vii.
Death
is
thought
of as
reference to Gen.
ii.
17;
iii.
3.
is
Con-
trast Prov.
Israelites"
14):
only
iii.
18,
Numb.
xix.
"
behalf."
26
Hillel
was
called,
ha-Gadol,
or
ment
chim
66
The
as " nasi"
VI. 1,
The
a.
is
tale of his
and more
briefly in Babli
aside Sabbath
when they
(?
appomt-
told in T. J. Pesa-
Sadducees).
clash
sons, of
Hillel,
had
Beth-
being inter-
foUowed a fortiori
from the fact that more than 200 minor
"Passovers" (=: sacrifices) in the year
argued
set aside the Sabbath ; and he
it
his point
since
I.
suing peace
loving
Eph.
XXX. 14
" nasi."
He was
35
13.
Thorah.
head and
zar,
ii. 17)"^'
in fact the
of peace"
whom
also Mai.
Shammai,"
to
man
so oft
and
xxv. 12);
5,
ii.
him
to
Aaron
applied,
is
(Numb.
by
nn
'pxnCJ'''
(Numb.
xx.
29),
Verfahren,
For
more on peace
loc.
cit.,
whose
'Uzziel,
him (Sukkah 28
the period 30
Shime'on held
Jose,
(Shabbath 15
b.c.
Jose
a).
70
4)
a.
n.;
much
At the end of
is
in
some
omits
of the
and
^3
Eom.
viii.
23; Ex.
vii. 7);
lives
and amongst
were equal,
Hillel
Zakai,
and E. 'Aqiba.
^^
to
nants.
Cf.
(&c.
Mark xvi.
15,
19.
Hillel
in
on Matt,
ddXaaaav Kal
xxiii.
ttjv
15 (irepidyeTe
iroirjaai
t^-qpdv
am
tt)v
'iva.
indebted
to
Dr
Schiller-Szinessy.who informs
me
that
Trpoa-r/XvTov),
vii.
v3 pS
p''TnD
end
said,
Mishnah
HiUel, Shi-
a).
Eabbah,
see Bern.
is
at the
it
he
study of
in the
fire
where
till
he called attention to
nearly 30 years ago.
it
in a lecture
I find
Jellinek's Bet-ha-Midrasch,
n^n
p. xLvi:
Mn
i^)r['^
'?non
>):
pDiy
(in5<{
'3-132
nnn
ncj'yj
ncj'yj
also iu
I'-an
1^
K"j)
nnx
tk
i6^ no
|n ni3T nr 'xai
13
nn3n
it
Wien 1873,
'2K''i^
-ms
'13
''\xn
nnn
nt nnrn
-n^i:^
^33
iroy
PIRQE ABOTH.
36
He
14
stroyed
[?
used to say,
name made
Ho!
on the
dwellers
Kerethim
(Zei^h.
nation of
sea-coast,
ii. 5),
nation deserv-
ing of excision.
do they stand?
by the merit of one fearer
of Heaven, whom they raise up in
PROSELYTE
Neh.
ix. 8)
a covenant."
passage in Midrash
rallel
great ^
(cf.
The
pa-
Chazitha
manner the
EJ'np
na310 -pXD
ni3Tm -ms
i^'n^ ^3
n?2s:
nhu
inOlDeut.xxxiii.
a foiirfold
and Aramaic.
It is
upon
vealed, but
Will ye receive
In like
a).
runs as follows:
dewill
he went
name
and
lOX: N^'in 1"
is
and he who
their refusal
and
all
the nations.
First
Esau and
the Thorah"?
to the sons of
was
it
said.
On
offered to others,
at last to Israel.
riv ins.
"\2
representative
proselyte annually, to
(cf .
u. 7
v. 33)
that
it
The
or extend.
final
but
Cf.
Eom.
i^rosexi. 11)
it
ary
spirit, or
(Jebamoth 47 b;
The Jew was
bound to attract men to the Thorah
by his good example, but not in the
themselves
sented
Jost,
Gesch.
448).
It
The
to draw,
"^J'tD
but
cf.
The saying
is illustrated
by
Is.
ii.
xxiii. 512.
The Holy One
him who humbles himself, and
humbles him who exalts himself.
Greatness flees fi-om him who follows
after it, and follows after him who
23
Matt,
exalts
flees
from
A man
it.
should not
Nedarim 55
('Erubin 13 b,
cf. .54
The saving
otherwise explained, aa
tise
'
'
tongues," 'SO
r\):)^h
bath 8a
k:*'"J'
lum lun
hzi
Cf.
Berakoth 13 a, Thosaph.
is
a;
Name
who
of the
continu-
Holy One
ni
min yc
a).
niD^
who
-po
().
He who
intelligence to go
having
;:
;
;
14 IG.
I.
37
who
He
15
and being
used to say, If 1
for
my own
Shammai
16
self
am
what
Make
said'^
A man
**-
must be
self-reliant; but
(Eom.
eiiirpoffdeKTOS (2
xiv. 7)
Cor. vi.
tion, yet
how weak
efforts" (Phil.
ii.
Shammai,
33
are
my
imaided
or
Shamai
(p. 3),
the
chem (Chagigah
the
fh-st
ii.
If not
2),
generally has
word in conti'oversy
(v.
25)
him ^ith
**;
say
and he went to
awaj',
"What
to
tary
this
fellow;
and the
(Tobit
Matt.
verse,
who
the
is
rest
go, study."
TTOLriffTjs
Hillel,
said
is
thy
whole
commen-
is
iv.
15),
12.
vii.
third over-
made a
to be
12, 13).
who is for me
now when ?
am
Thorah,
for himself
vvv KUipbs
iSoi
glorifi-
cation.
serves
Numb.
He read
"And the
man
put to death."
30 b).
how
to relate
man
One day a
came to Shamai
on condition of
accepting the Written and dispensing
with the Oral, Thorah. Shamai dis-
to be
foreigner
proselytised,
him
the
usual
order),
far as
scripture, of
51:
He said
whom is it
said to him,
i.
Even
of David,
thing
is
written,
worthless
with his
much more of a
who has come
staif
and with
first
day
They
order.
of
proselyte
and on the
King
fortiori of
ap-
in reverse
be
him. This
spoken ? He
to
Israel.
He
as
said,
The
his
wallet...
met
together.
irritability of
Shamai
Contrast
ii.
17,
PIRQE ABOTH.
38
little
expression of countenance
(ill.
18).
a fixture
a tiling to be
and
to which secular engagements must
'Obadiah ben Jacob of
give way.
Sforno takes the words of Shamai as
at stated times,
engaged in daily
Though
O Menachem, to
forth,
shouldest
thou
that
is
it
fitting
times
fix
for
20)
(ill.
death
is
ix.
n"lti'''"lQ
His
15).
From
He was
not
the
died a Christian.
5,7).
Be
30
like
The next
tradition
is
in
link
given in
terval there
/
"
The high
bin 45 a. Cf. Becjah ii. 6.
esteem in which he was held is shewn
by the saying, that " from when
ii.
9.
descendants of Hillel,
reappears in
(or,
in
The
5.
ii.
the Greek
In the in-
IV. 5,
niOIX {^ IDiy),
to
the
34,
Hillel,
who
3 (under cu-cumstances
xxii.
it
improbable
that
and
of nasi,
For his
opinion in what cases the Sabbath
strictness might be relaxed, see 'Erustanding, for
100
capital
TafiaXiriX),
used of "cir-
is
cumstantial" evidence in
Gamliel
first
V.
gives the
Sanhedrin
form,
In
who himself
Shime'on, and
generation,
sense
grandson of
but the
HUlel, is called Eabban
title may have been permanently connected with his name only by a later
son of
to
ment.
digression
is
36
of
chain
the
(?)
years."
leave as
authority:
possible
scope
little
personal
for
bias
as
and the
temptations of self-interest.
37
For
Gamahel
defence
a
I.
of
Simon ben
But
and n.
1.
Simon was
"den
Martyrertod...kurz vor
Einnahme Jerusalems."
For his
saying
Va-jiqra
Eabbah
on proselytism in
ii.
see Jost,
A 447.
I.
amongst the
39
17, 18.
wise,
Qoheletli Eabbah, v.
silence
to this
5. cites
Kn'?''0*7
cure of a thing.
for
EE.
Jo-
The Babli
n?Dn
the
He who
even in praise of
the Great
to
overmuch
the Holy One is
talks
world, for
y*?!*
Eccl.
61
a.
V.
it
is
1*?
-iSD'-n.
2; Ecclus.
Silence
is
vii.
14; Berakoth
His praise
man
one
occasion
(E.
SjTiagogue.
of Eabbi,
three things
On
Mishnah) a saying
SpintrO
as a
" Speech
for
;"
a precious stone
said,
saying of E. Jelioslina'
a sheqel
sin.
19
self-willed
who ven-
His son
Shime'on at length succeeded him,
and became the teacher of many illustrious men.
To this age (remarks
belong the sayings of Meir,
Jehudah, Jose, and Simon b. Gamliel
" Sein Todesjahi* ist
in the Mishnah.
Jost)
fiillt
es
lius
gedi'ehen
zum
ciety,
iv.
12).
is
not
They
PIRQE ABOTH.
40
elprivrii
suggested
Peace
UV^y
is cited at
butes of
is
(Eph.
ffivdefffios TTJs
crvvd4(T/x(i}
with
iv. 3),
rrji/
Compare
rrjs lpr]vr]s
dyairrjv S iariv
TeXetoTrjTOs {Go\.
ui. 14),
in 'Elpi^vr)
In Col.
TeXeiorrjTOi.
the paradox,
...
ij
elpijvr)
ppafSev^TU, which
avvdea/j-os rrjs
iii.
15 occurs
tov XpiffroO
many
of Zech.
viii. 16,
a verse which
copies.
The Qabbalists
state
made
fol.
a.).
CHAPTER
Rabbi*
1.
said,
"Which
is
IL
man
pursues it^
1
Rabbi, which
is
equivalent to
"my
as a
also,
title
being
came
to be used
the possessive
As a
disregarded.
title
affix
it
is
superior to
pecially to
as Eabbi
is
tine),
title
scendants of Hillel).
It is said in
is
the
greater
pnO
Cf.
This form
o Xeyerai SiodcxKaXe.
'312")
Mishuah (Tha'auith
8)
is
found in other
( 2),
holy.
Gesch.
B.
ill
m 219 or 220
118);
health, at
(Jost,
a. d.
but by some he
is
remarked that
"from the days of Moses to Eabbi we
have not found Thorah and greatness
in one place" (Gittin 59 a); for there
was not his hke in Israel for gi-eatness
"From when
in Thorah and wealth.
Eabbi died, meekness and the fear of
sin ceased" (Sotah ix. 15).
Little is
placed earher.
known
of
It
is
copies.
The
title of
given to
'Si,
and
is
mxani.
6
PIRQE ABOTH.
42
2.
Jost renders
'
'
of
mi<Dn
is
illustrated
by Jud.
iv.
E. 'Obadiah
HONOUR."
Baba Bathra 16 b
of.
man
of
that
cf.
Jud.
xvii. 8)
interpretation:
sight of
3
that
Cf Nedaeim 39
.
reward
specified in
b.
and the
thy deeds
Jehudah ha-Nasi^
R.
said.
may
it
days."
xxii.
that
7),
if
other pre-
remarks that
negative ijrecepts do not come under
consideration here, since there is no
cepts be rewarded.
"ISC' for
1
Or,
them.
"Know
(that)
This
omitting HD:
above thee
is
but
5
103
is
found in
R.
b)
only.
The
first
The
terrce,
ex-
niay
and conform"good-
manners,"
&c.
not only in Rabbinic, but (with a variation) in the Bible, in senses readily
It is
(length
of
remarked
days)
is
the grave
" Honour thy father and thy mother,"
precepts,
all
Sforno
remarks
and
12),
iii.
the gi-avest of
"Thou
Cf.
Gen.
Kings ii. 4.
The second part of the saying recom-
mends
individuals, regarded as
mem-
ets
7), re-
25.
II.
Excellent
43
is
and
all
Be
3.
man
them but
appi'oach
man in the
4.
He used
He may do thy
by a
own purposes
for their
it is
to their advantage,
and they
and stand not
;
Do His
will, as if it
He
wilP.
5.
until the
of the patriarchs.
waripas (Eom.
xi.
day
vixC}v
^
of thy death";
(Luke
'Edi'
vi. 38.)
TI.S
28).
TToielv K.T.X.
fi^v<f)
6 fiiffdos
aWa
Kara
fi
0X1
6(pet\7ifj.a.
milJI,
is
is
X^SoD
celestial
"fa-
tribiinal).
Cf.
for
it is
ament.
is
revealed and
simplest.
''
"It
Cf.
is
found in the
Swcrofcrcj'
els
New Test-
tov
koXttov
a).
said [but
cf.
the context],
And thou
xi.
of others is
xx\-iii. 48),
i**
Berakoth 29 a
illustrates
this
PIRQE ABOTH,
thou comest into his place and say not of a
in the end it shall be heard;
not
may est
perchance thou
He
6.
will study
leisure.
countenance
not
do
writers
the
Machazor Yitry (see Grit. Note) remarks that the title "B." should not
be read, as in '3, before the name of
HiLLEL. He is identified with Hillel
ha-Zaqen by comparing Sukkah 53 a,
where the saying aboiit the "skull"
ness, let
say that
for
it,
leisure
and not
he will
more
convenient season
may
never
come.
According to the more usual negative
reading and interpretation the saying
is
may
in
interpretation.
Speak not
words which prhna facie cannot be
heard, though ultimately they may be
heard words which require elaborate
the
sc.
F|"ID (ed.
festivity
at
the
of
feast
of
rational
ed;
"AUes was du
vortragst
musz mit
come
will not
drowned thee
11
This
is
to thy
shall be drowned."
HEABD
If a
if
word
man
of
Thorah mat be
has leisure
some form,
is
claims to acceptance.
Mishnah
shiiin
See Parah
"Iw'DX.
III.
7;
vi. 1; tii. 5;
Sotah
v. 3;
CN)
Mak-
'Erakin
Themurah v. 4.
The word 113, of which boor may
viii. 7
be employed as a trtinsliteration,
used
is
In
re-
Prov.
xii. 1:
to attend
proof
is
him do
Nin,
for
Heb. "Vl.
12
Ma-
Cf.
very
1^
is
ni}
Cf.
yivuaKuv tov
Ezek.
vii. 27...
II.
And
GS.
45
lias much traffic
men endeavour to
is
wise.
be a
mau'^
saw a skull (Matt, xxvii. 33) which floated
on the face of the water, and he said to it, Because thou drownedst^ they drowned thee, and in the end they that drowned
Moreover
7.
lie
He
8.
more
used to
servants,
\aov
(Sotah
live to
sim,
it is
ONE
of the 6x^^-
of
care:
iOvri, is
D''1!l,
So
''1J,
the singular
An
iiriffKOTTOs
ii.
when
fully
(1
Tim.
iii.
Tim.
It
is
own
man-
resoui'ces
added in Berakoth
He who
will
end.
Cf.
Xajpac v
irdi'Tes
to
him
one
oi
\a^6vTes
p.6.-
(^latth.
fiaxo-tpT] dn-oXoi/vrat
xxvi. 52).
which,
yap
like
(cf. I. 14),
of the
is
On
sentence
"Ham
because
many ways
it
thee" (Obadiah
15).
It is a
Talmud
the
suffered
(Bereshith
17
common
loss
Eabbah
Ex.
Cf.
Man
is to
lower: as right to
gey)
t;
tQi /xiv
5'
Mundi
Man-
airaTas avrrjs
ou ToXfx^
Kal dia
irp'oa-
Ta&rrjs
fJ.fv
^et \oyov
atffdriats,
whether
where
(Zohar on Gen.
13,
as
yap dvSpbs
who
i.
kclI
5k yvvaiKl,
disputed
is
-writes (de
afSpl
yvvaiKos
rous,
to "IDH
as upper to
Tas 6e yorjreias
tjdovr]
'Ev Tjoiv
It
I.
is
temptation.
as the Divine
left:
human. Philo
Oplficio, Vol.
tooth
or
Woman-
18.
xxii.
to the
set at
xxxvi).
medium of
woman as b^'C^
Joh.
that
eye
of
is
when he has
regarded as a
irdvv
done unto
22)
ix.
ixdvij}'
shall be
(Gen.
of expressing
" as
Thus,
pronounced,
is
"with
what measure a man measirres, they
(cf. note 7), measure to him:" Samson,
eyes,
removed.
told"
T-g
sinned has
that
slavery
of
(pepeiv,
saying in the
is
in Ai-amaic
will
" for
end),
gift
...SAW. ..and
left to his
15).
I.
(cf.
should be BiSuktikos,
i. 7).
A man
13
7, 8).
dividual heathen.
i'*
I.
it is
k.t.X.
aapKos,
in
contrasted with
The
contrast
"right" and
i.
"left"
2, col. 14)
hand
right
is
ex-
(left)
PIEQE ABOTH.
46
4):
more Thorah, more life (Prov. iii. 1, 2): more icisdom, more
more righteousness, more peace. He v/ho has gotten
scholars^^:
it
He who
for himself^'*.
has gotten to
of the
life
world to come.
9.
interpretation
B.
El.
nn2t3
D''OK'
The man
7iyj'?;
(given
of
xviii)
m''"i
also
Pirqe
in
13,
xlviii.
Is.
ps
mD"-
n'* e^N
is
56^a dvSpds
iffriv
The congregation
(1
Cor.
Israel
of
r)
xi.
5^
7).
per-
is
Weisheit
ther
(1)
study,
(P.
Ewald),
ei-
that
or
may mean
that
(2)
it
increases with
who sharpen
17),
aoi
Stafxivei
rj
fieyoKoi.
x'''^'<"
drjcavpol
(T.a.Kxo.loi),
15).
(Sotah
zu
einem
neuen
Jeru-
The
theoretical reformer.
on 13
""DDI, that
cause of
the stranger,
of wilfulness are
Chagigah 13
he m-ges the
a,
cities,
upon the
will
qol to that
xiv. 14),
clouds, I
of the
years,
may
atone for
them,
as
the
sin-
They
said
a.
he was
at the point of
wept.
to the
rather than as a
futility
old paths,
strictness
Cf.
Aboth
his disciples
came
They
said,
rv. 22).
When
death some of
to visit him.
Why
He
dost thou,
He
said
::
47
9, 10.
II.
from Shammai.
Were
(Berakoth 28 b),
me
an
before
wrath
transient
is
me
put
earthly
bringing
king,
-whose
who, should he
death would
the
to death,
not be eternal:
tliey
whom, moreover,
can
me
but weep,
before...
who,
nal:'
the death
if
They say
with this
belief,
In accordance
E. Jochanan
is
re-
kiah
"Es
ist
sehr
disciples
Shabbath 147
practice.
attested
acquisition
ilK'y
and
read-
ing
failed to di'aw
According
he yielded
b,
to
the
to
it
adduced in illustration
is
principle
that
man
of the
should betake
(iv. 20),
(cf.
heard
better
the palm.
both
off
him.
after
tion,
The
bears
Emmaus, but
di'ew to
den."
include
Eemember
E. Eli'ezer
Thorah."
said,
is
it
Ele'azar again
may
as
E. 'Aqiba
is
Ele-
power
and inexhaustible
inven-
"who
(cf.
i.
fertility
adds to
14),
of
what he has
and draws
infer-
Hyrqanos, as
we find in Sukkah, never spoke a word
b.
cf.
Eab "
(A*).
els f'cjTjy
aiwiov.
PIRQE ABOTH.
48
He
ben Hyrqanos is a plastered cistern, -vvbicli loseth not a drop; Jehosbua' ben Chananiah
bappy is she that bare him; Jose the Priest is pious^*;
Shim'eon ben Nathanael is a sinfearer Ele'azar ben 'Arak is a
used to recount their praise
Eli'ezer
welling spring.
He
used to
were in a scale
ben Hyrqanus"^ in the other scale,
he would outweigh them all. Abba Shaul said in his name, If
all the wise of Israel were in a scale of the balance, and Eli'ezer
ben Hyrqanos with them, and Ele'azar ben 'Arak in the other
scale, he would outweigh them all.
11.
of the balance,
The chasid
^*
of
is
the gradation
'
:
'
and
Eli'ezer
greater excel-
Cf.
(SUaios).
of nail-parings,
T'DPI
is
pnV; He who
(Niddah
yK'l"
chasid
The
a).
is
nexion
17
with
the
is
term
in con-
"the
designation
grain of pepper
is
ful of gourds."
through
tion
his
opposition to the
Shortly afterwards
he
retired
Lydda
On
his death-bed
to Coesarea.
from
Priest."
called
One
CT-Dn
(Berakoth
v,
Essene, or
T'Dn
'Ecro-aios,
identifies
(regardless of the ^)
1).
name
it
with
but the
priest.
The
25
is
In
Piny
'^'D
of
Cin
man
tradition
Ipiyi
of genius.
'J^D,
quotes,
when
the
is
given to Sinai.
like
my
two books
of
'i-'D,
also
After
14
a,
him
is
named
12.
that a
40
1113.
II.
neighbour
and R. Shime'on
way
good eye^:
good friend": and R. Jose said, A good
R. Jehoshua' said,
the good
said,
He that
He said
foresees
what
is
to
to them, I approve
R. La'zar said,
good heart.
the words of Ele'azar ben 'Arak rather than your words, for his
be":
repayeth not^
"He
's
210) shall be blessed for he giveth of his bread to the poor" (Prov.
(]^y
xxii.
On nV niU
9).
(Prov.
xv. 15)
Chaber
-^
is
neighbour.
KaX
Cf.
i.
7,
Luke
8;
xv.
6,
nSJpn (Aboth
who
30).
Cf.
man
evil
ydrovai.
"He
17).
twv e\a-
considers the
beforehand,
of insight,
consequences of
things
reward (1).
'^ "Eat thou not the bread of him
its
is
j;n)...Eat
"He
7).
{]"]}
xxiii. 6,
py yn U>ii"
is
The
19
Cf.
Compare
Aboth
v.
also 15,
able to
is
not
(Lukexvi. 10).
that
all
wealth belongs to
S.
God (Hag-
gai
from God.
PIRQE ABOTH.
50
rather than your words, for your words are included in his
words '\
14.
the honour of thy friend be dear unto thee as thine own; and be
not easily provoked
and repent^^ one day before thy death.
;
the
fire
the
is
bite of a fox^, and their sting the sting of a scorpion, and their
hiss the hiss of a fiery-serpent, and all their words are as coals
^^ "E<rw^j'
irovrjpdi k.t.X.
fibs
(Mark
21,
vii.
22).
33
'Obadiah
R.
establishes
a con-
11);
and
nexion between this clause and the preceding by remarking that if anger has
toi>s
"Ephraim
also is like
a siUy dove
\'ii.
(Eph.
18; Clem.
i.
pent at once.
man
The saying
in Shabbath 153
a, and explained aa
meaning that a man should repent today because he may die to-morrow:
"Let thy gai'ments be always white"
(EccL ix. 8). A parable of Jochanan
ben Zakkai is added: A king invited
liis
ad Cor.
^^
i.
The
36, 59).
gards:
"And warm
extraneous
it
tends
to
first,
re-
&c." as an
addition,
part of the
Eambam
thyself,
since initability
discourtesy.
According to
pent, &c.";
(3)
"Warm
"Re-
(2)
thyself, &c."
the
neighbour
els
ttjv -yievvav
tov
irvpos.
it is
4),... the
wick-
S.)
By
cifying
sud-
summoned
the
he
said.
They
quet shall
sit
and
eat,
The
and
sit,
and the
thirsty
foolish shall be
hungry
explain
Pl"fi^.
3'
Au
R. Jehoslma' said,
15.
rendered, oculiis
mall,
might he
|''y
since
is
pj?
many
It occurs in
vTjpos
in 13
is
Oh-
other places.
d4)da\fj.bs tro-
attributed to Eli'ezer,
Eli'ezer, &c.
Mischuah gegen
180
Aus-
Tem-
der
iii
pels
des Jochanau b.
Scliiiler
Als Levit
Zachai.
Tem-
pels,
When,
in
many
ple,
invn
iijoy'?
He had
bv nTTJ jnnj
-inv nn
r^^
p'piD'-
3"n*
The yi l^f
(Eph.
22, 23)
iv.
ture
is
said,
is
"1^**
The omission
Rabbinic.
rakoth
Cf.
v. 1),
Biblical (Gen.
The word
&c.
i.
1^*^
(1)
fornmtion,
ciii.
11;
Is.
31t2 1^*
These
frequently per-
of
ii.
(with
"1^'"'''1,
"ID
He formed man
with two
yods),
tico
the
D''"!^'',
21D
Abel
night,
and the
'^
other,
him
his
for
am
The
dishonesty.
retort
watchman:
me
him?
slay
(see
but
business,
It is
Thou
that hast
The Targum on
little
comes against
icise
reminds us
makes
man
man
-|!*\
the
the
it,
that
This
by
the
(Luke
The
31).
denotes
are
2^
man: the
The dualism
sonified.
it
'Vi\
cf.
Wort
vi.
2b
the
bewii-kte
Gen.
Cf.
mxn
y-i
is
Siavoia, especially in
position in or of a
slain
.na
v-iy:D
21,
viii.
('2)
evil nature^,
was, I
ii.
and
xxix. 16),
and the
evil eye'^
not Jehoshua'.
troversy with 'Aqiba, Gamliel
51
14, 15.
11.
indwelling
xi.
aKadaprov
irvfvfia
2126).
evil
l^i''
(Eccl. x.
1,
Targ.) lies
S3m,
PIRQE ABOTH.
52
and hatred of the creatures put a mau out of the world ^' (alcov).
16.
R. Jose said, Let the property (Luke xvi. 11, 12) of thy
friend be precious unto thee as thine
Thorah, for
it
and
name
of
Heaven
K Shime'on said, Be
in Prayer
where Beelzebub
53,
p.
ex-
is
"Die
god":
agjptisch-griechischen
3 Cf.
Nationalgottheit Baal-Sebub
(2
zebub
(o.
bill),
iiberhaupt,
Satanas,
Gegengott,
als
Marc.
3, 22.
Lucas
ge-
u. 27,
11, 15 u.
uamUch
wie die
reits fiir
Baal-Sobub
einfach einen
neuer
b]!2),
Uebersetzung besetzt, in
sammt-
aramiiischen Dialekten
lichen
daraiis
(NSm
Beel-Debab
als
syr. hexapl.
ganz
'Feiud' bedeutet,
und
Stamm 321
hassen, anfeinden."
^^
*"
from
^ei
(1
fwTji'
Joh.
Jew.
The first tract of the Mishnah commences with a question about the
time for reading the
(i.
av'ry
iv
Contrast
15).
13)
was iu common
Deut.
knowledge of Thorah
xxxiii.
See Excursus
29,
where the
be,
'Akov,
Ki'p:os
tJ/uwp
"They
the clause
that
it
is
eh
The
A* remarks that
should be omitted.
xii.
6eds
koX
a.ya-n-r)<Tei%
k.t.\.
For him
earl.
cool
Gehinnom,"
"When
scattered kings in
on Zalmon
snoiv
and read
death, for
^^
]'\'oh'i
Prayer
for it is said
the Almighty
was white as
where take CIS
it, it
;"
mO?^*,
make
dis-
shadow
is
(Berakoth 15
of
b).
is
to
labour.
Kvpio^
'IffparfK,
J?2p,
is
Mark
cf.
not inherited,
own
and
iv.
who
at set times
4.
was
It
p. (54).
fi^-
The term
iiu
" audi,"
yoti', or
See
in the evening.
alibviov
&c. refer
tinct,
...ouK
A*
31.
X.
vovffav
1 Cor.
diesen
fiir
thy
let all
^^.
&c.
is
actions be to the
17.
own
ffis"
set
er
'
"He who
makes
his
prayer
(Berakoth
time
rv. 4).
(J?2p), for
(Berakoth 26
"There
d^tj-
is
no
a).
If it is
doubtful
II.
He,
for it
loncj-
For God
said.
is
is
53
16, 17.
blessed
God''^,
is
21,
186,
place,
wbetlier a
Out
for
the
of
said
is
it
1),
(Berakoth,
&c.
depths,
cxxx.
(Ps.
11)
vi.
made
is
to
the
ujion
rest
Abraham
cob.
established the
morn-
ing prayer (Gen. xix. 27), since standing is to be identified with thejillah
(Ps.
cvi.
Two
30).
nyjlS,
are
times
other
prayer,
referred
nPI^C',
Isaac
to
"ten" names
of
11).
of
s^iQj^,
from R.
Pauline
eV
and
TrXTjpwerrj
10)
its
iva
It is con-
name
the if
God, who
of
i^
and as
28),
"AH
the earth
of the
it
is
all
(Acts
space:
His glory"
these meanings
of
where
filling
is full of
Both
name
regarded as
existence
or locus of
x^ii.
is
Gen.
JJJS''1,
said that
God
xxviii. 11),
to.
1IAQ03I,
More-
TrXripcj/xa.
maqom
since
naturally sug-
TOTTos,
gests a doctrine of a
an
is
of God,
ordinary
is
it
not ne-
was
TrXTjpiv/xa
originally a product of
antiquity of
(2) to
GxosTiciSii.
TOTTos,
place or sjjace.
Xpto-ra)
The
all.
cf.
exist, i.e.
this
cites
S.
Hebrew Name
the
to
+ 6^ + 5-)
5"^
Israel.
over,
In accordance with
the above uses, God the Father is
spoken of in the New Testament both
torf, s. V. ?73.
1-
squares
the
of
Bar
2001.
col.
See
On
The
use of
D*J"l3nn,
1,
and
and
and on
jirayer,
*nS nipO
Ps. xc.
the expression to
ivX-qpoiixa,
and
(3) to
dVaf
tottos'
fj,h
(Tw/xaros KTrir\r)p(i3fJ.ivrr
(Vol.
i.
di
iTn-
X'^P*
"^""o
Kara, devrepov
6\ov
6
5i'
Oeos
okwv
...
Kara
5^
rpirov
arjixaLvbp.ivov
tQ
is
so called,
He is
the place
avTOV
eluaf
X^pa
iavTov,
(i^v TO.
irepUx^i-v
place, [So 3B
ipi(f>p6nevos
elfjLi
tSttos,
koI
eTreiSrjTrep
/n6v(j)
iavrt^.
aXX' iv
oiJtos
eavTou
Kexwp'jKws
iffTi
Kal
TOircp,
Kal 'iKacTOv
54
PIRQE ABOTH.
and plenteous
suffering,
in grace*^;
Be
R. La'zar said,
18.
know
whom
before
thou
wherewith
and
the Master of thy
(1 Pet.
toilest*"
15) to Epicurus^';
iii.
and who
is
work.
R. Tarphon*^ said,
19.
TO yap irfpiexof^^fov
vw
The day
6eiov,
5i
a later addition.
apparently mixes
up
Joel
ii.
13,
despondency
to denote
heretic
Ejjicurus
or
is
used
unbeliever,
On
this
Lex. Chald.
The
by some
from
latter
is
supposed
Manes, and
to denote primarily a Manichee early
Jewish writers used it especially for
Christian, but in later times, owing
to the tendency to expunge antichristianisms, it was frequently crossed out,
to be
'JSO,
or replaced by
and
(^aduqi;
to
wherever there
can seldom be
depended upon.
answer to the
who must
" Epicurean,"
regarded as a Jew-heretic.
ing of bar S.
same
is
therefore be
The
susceptible
read-
of the
"Study Thorah,
hnow what answer to
interpretation:
make
to
mean,
if
an
Epicurus;"
or
it
may
short,
is
is
answer Epicurus."
the interpretation of
know how
The latter is
R. Israel, who
that he
who
may
and he
remarks upon the saying (Berakoth
28 b), " Be careful of the honour of
your associates, and restrain your sons
;
from meditation
worthy
the
of
come "^that
of the world
life
man
to restrain himself
is
to
not required
from speculation,
maturity.
understands
teach
the
one's
son
injunction
not
to
"Greek science"
one's son
4^
Thorah
in Greek.
that a
man
ward.
final clause,
readings
re-
three sayings
may
The
longer
( 14) is
made
up.
of
This
also be
saying,
precedes.
47 R. Tarphon, Trypho, or " Teraphon," a contemporary of the abovementioned five, was one of those pre-
II.
55
19.
IcS,
give thee
much
reward;
and faithful is the Master of thy work, who will pay thee the
reward of thy work, and know that the bestowal of the reward
of the rifjhteous is for the time to come".
sent at the death of E. J. ben Zakkai.
48
where the
in Matt, xx.,
unemployed,
qixipav
since
all
is
olKoSecriroTris
whom
he finds
apyol;
man
Vineyard
Bar
S.
remarks that
a microcosm containing
here
brevis,''
man must
to idleness, for
to finish the
6 althv 6 yiiA-
It
'Erubin
life.
ix.
3,
may
refer,
or,
as in
CHAPTER
III.
and we
tract,
Din
to Israel
me
for
make
-will
he
were better
four things,
my
days
than to be made wicked before haMAQOii for one hour, so that they may
not say that for the sake of office he
He
to be considered
tion.
speculation
retracted.
Ab Beth
thee
said. It
What
is
fore, behind,
This Mishnah
tah
it
II.
Va-jiqra
Eabbah
"r'NII^
'
ns, so
"Eemember
who
source,
must
This principle
is
a,
37
a).
securely,
dered by
Xjn,
Onqelos,
th^
"'S'-JD
inn
majority.
are taken
The
is
usually rendered:
"Thou
may
to
wrest judg-
E.
")3 T1
include the
It
That
application.
citations
its
cannot
may
number
and above
many
to
ND
thy
clause,
Qo-
1.
of a
to
xii.
ment."
as
xviii.
received
in T. J. So-
is cited
But over
we have an express
the Mishnah in relation
question: "Qnamvis rei
of instances.
this
statement in
to a certain
III.
whence thou
13.
57
going: to
art
whom
thou art about to give account and reckoning: before the King
of the kinos of kintjs, blessed
is
He.
2.
peace of the kingdom" (1 Tim. ii. 1, 2), since but for fear thereof we had swallowed up each his neighbour alive.
R Chananiah
3.
ben Thradyon
Two
said,
that
sit
Nor
sit
among them,
for it is said,
tamen
'3"yK
\'ii\i^
1,
II.
Lex. Chald.
s.v.
Buxtorf,
also
Cf.
So long as
S<nDlDDX.
-w-as
it
presei-ved
was neces-
"Thorah is only
acquired by
as
'Erubin 54
D"'3JD"'D,"
(Cf.
b.
Va-jiqra
it
is
Eabbah
down,
19)
iii.
HDn
7\^h^Tf\
supporting the
brief
IT
1713,
thus
reading of
th-e
SAGAN &c.
is
act of "go-
Tliis title
'E.
to go.
foiuid in
is
The
whom
it
Sheqalim
feared the
16).
vi. 1
Meuachoth x.
iii. 1.
"And
away
ried
Lord
his delight
have peace"
"But
captives,
shall ye
said in
iii.
memory
Parah
6
1)
Shekinah*'
i.
together
it is said,
Shekinah
i.
in the law of
2),
a uon-BibKcal abstract
is
like,
lest
ing
it
restrial.
The following
of its use.
"God
shall
In Gen.
enlarge
ix.
are examples
27
said,
it is
Japhet,
pti'M
D::n
8,
Onqelos has:
"And
they shall
make
them."
itc.
Cf.
Ex.
fui'thcr
xvii.
7; xxix.
45, 6,
development
is
"Ip*
riRQE ABOTir.
58
One
4.
and
that sits
and keepeth
iii.
said,
it is
silence,
him
it
He
siiteth alone
him (Lam.
iqyon
28).
His Shekinah
which
(Gen.
Targ.
2-1,
iii.
"glory" manifests
Jerus.)
flaming firo
on Sinai (Ex. xix. 18) or {<-1p> '^
(Ps. Ixviii. 19).
We find K^J^IIp '^
itself iu
iu Targ. Jonathan on
The Shekinah
Numb.
v. 3, &c.
especially connected
is
the one
The two
ing.
Diyino Presence.
This
only one of
is
is
place,
coiu'so of the
remark that
new
definiteness,
A6yos cap^
iv fjiMv (Joh.
and
ceptions assume a
to a visible
the
sanctuary, but
not to be restricted
mani-
creative,
as
and
i.
The word
14).
its
ffKrjvij
on
ac-
brew
to express the
dwelling with
Shekinah and
men compare
tQv
6.v6,:d>irti}v,
-q
CKTjvrj
its
especi-
tou Qeov
aiiri2v
and indeed so closely does Shekinah resemble aKrjvr], that the former
has even been thought of as a trans-
The word
ia
was
eastward, or iu the direction in which
Israel worshipped, and that hence the
points of the compass N. S. E. W. are
called
in the west,
right, before,
left,
maybe
noticed hero
left side
an
(cf. p.
hehind.
(Jer.
^^^
invisible
i.
14)
It
connected with
is
ny^iri-
its face
evil.
nnsn
So
JIQVD
Shekinah
vidual
rj
iKel
el/xl
may
in the
equivalent to
we may
is
expresses HIH* by
^'
is
In some MSS.
make up
inserted in order to
"two that
sit,
&c." is repeated
^0
is
probably an interpolation.
is
sometimes practically
but
them by
the medium cf a
sit
a).
Sheeinah
The
aurcSv.
The righteous
heads, ni'^^i^n
17
/xicrci)
The MS.
(p. 35).
world to come
(v
Memea, \6yos
(v. 1),
distinguish between
is
There
(p. 30).
^|
III.
48.
59
0.
said over
it
vomit and
filthiuess
without MAQOM*'*
G.
it is said,
For
if tliey
had
are
all tables
at one table,
it
and he who
night,
is
The Thorali
fire
is like
thing to feed
it
so words of Thorah,
used to set
on fire the large": a disciple may even
he his master's best teacher (Tha'anith 7 a; Makkoth 10 a). See p. 77.
est, as
is
and
powerless, in contrast with God the
LiVKsG one; and as "corpses" they
Cf. Ps. cyI. 28.
also defile by contact.
11
The expression
1^
guilty of death."
Whoso
8.
viii. 19),
naturally means,'
etre
ffiiv
avrQ
^rjo-u/iev (1
to another reading
he who
is
(p.
"without men-
secondary meaning:
tion of the
of 5, 6
ort
irdv
Name
illustrated
is
yap
fxevov ayidi^erai
Tim.
iv. 4:
Compare Etre
irlvere,
evxaptanas Xa.u^avo-
jxera
ivrev^eus.
etre
by
KTlcr/na
dTr6^\riT0v,
The idea
God."
of
of 6 roiroi
53) suggests a
dre
ri
ovv iffdlere,
Troieire,
iravra ds
He who
is
sleepless
at
night
Ixiii.
turns his
mind
thoughts,
he incurs
to idleness,
guilt.
and
idle
So with
The
According
5, 6.
(njSDni) and in-
who indulges in
(3)
he
God
V. 10).
terjiretation
Thess.
apposite sequel to
especially liable to
name
afxa
KaOevdcu/J-ev,
Compare.. J^a
upon
receives
or
evil
man
assaults
ig
of the
This notion
spirits.
incitmbent upon a
able
times. .."when
man
at all avail-
thou
sittest
in
night
{Crit.
iaterrupt his
"mishnah"
( 11).
PIRQE ABOTH.
60
of Thorah, they
him
the yoke of
of worldly care.
a-jf
in
for it is said,
fidOere
God standeth
/jov
i(p''
yap ^vyos
rJ/xas,
fiov
Kal
XPV'
(Matt.
Jitith
When
9.
^*
xi.
The yoke
29, 30).
of mal-
therefore the
"great"
number
city is
batlunim, or
men
of leism'e, to
is
Compare Baba
man
(writes
bar S.)
less
From
over anxiety on
such matters an
all
The Tables
man.
charter of freedom
phrase of
this
of the
Law
are a
E. N. XX.
as in T. J. Peali
i.
1 (see p. 10).
It
Thus
text.
probably
as
italics
Ten
is
the
number which
(Numb.
xiv. 27),
How
i.
8,
of
htcrum,
together.
mux
xii.
Eashi interprets 31 TN
bundle of three stalks.
five
is
where
22,
miJX
as a
The number
i.
Mekiltha,
24,
'13
ij^JJJt
From
nS TDTX
circumstances
sent with
is
men?
am
the Shekinah
"In every
pre-
place...
revealed to thee,
71^33
ple).
effable
uttered in
it is
(cf.
long shall I
My
and
if
consti-
fasciculus.
where au
documents is explained to
mean three or more tied together, while
the corresponding word ]"'"13n, invo-
mux
Mecji'a
n")''n3n, in the
^^
mUS,
connected with
where I
interpolated, .we
and
place
is a haphar.
Omitting from the text the words in
make
i. 3).
of a context.
is
an 'edah.
of
congi-egation (Megillah
sit
among
in.
upon a man Ly the government under which he lives, or the oppression whicli he may suffer at the
hands of the great. The yoke of dereU
ercQ is the anxiety which a man sufation, put
ten
is
From
the provinces.
thou
vfilt
not come to
My house,
III.
mighty
And
Because
it is said, lie
Because
even three?
(Amos
in the earth
place that
my
whence
{is it j^'i'oved
of) evenfive^'^1
And whence
ix. 6).
Because
may be
To
tho
my
it
is
said,
He
It
my
'DJJ'
to read
tu'ely
among gods, &c. " Here au ennew case, suggested by the second
hemistich of the same verse, is brought
under consideration.
It is gi'anted
that the Shekinah is with an iKKXyjaia,
a congregation assembled for the dis-
soever I
the
is
the
functions?
is
in the midst.
From
the pub-
= three), we
cause
come unto
my Name
to be mentioned.
is
it
with
assumed
to be
The simplest
a hand.
five fingers of
hypothesis (suggested by C)
rah,
this
marked
most clearly
and thence to
transition is
in Berakoth
then takes
the
numbers
Berakoth
in reverse
will
thee."
difficulty
judges
kinah
it
feet lead
that JUDGE,
it is said,... and
I will
Gl
y.
parallels
is
that the
reading,
should
be
expunged.
number five
The clause
'ID D"lp3, is
mention
is
secular function.
sayings on
ber three
order.
wliy
If the
make
sepai'ate
Bion is required to
if
at
all,
in the
second place.
of judgment could
The
then scarce-
to the case of
Thorah
alone.
Accord-
it
brings
serted.
is
riRQE AUUTII.
62
said,
Then
another
( 3),
is
tlicy tliat
And whence
even one
my name
all
Because
I will
it
In
is said,
of
we given thee
(1
R. Jacob said.
11.
He
wdio
is
How fine
this tree
How fine
they account
12.
R. Meir,
it
to
him
is
that tree
as
if
and how
name
When
and has
sits
and
studies,
it
unto him as
of
if
thyself,
17
S)v
Cf. Job.
deowKois
xvii.
IJ.01,
9,
10: dXXa
Kai
irepl
18
in Heb.
1"
of citation
is
Forgetfulness
iv. 7.
Tbe word
PlitJ'
means
to change,
"E.
'^^
man
Boi-ve
to, iixa
of
is
regarded as sinful
from carelessness
and neglect of devr^pwaLS. A man ia
not to be blamed for a forgetfulness
arising from sickness or any cause
beyond bis control. In Berakotb 8 b,
an old man who has forgotten bis
"Tbahnud" 1DJ1J? DOnO is compared
to the shattered tables of the Law,
in so far as
and
it
is
it
arises
said,
nini^
nnci mn^"?
piK2
distinguish-
ninDID,
the
and tbe
tables,
So tbe broken-down
in
The
"Qamep"
(t)
12
b,
citation
may
tbe
Ai'k.
Of prayer
that to
1? yi,
an
expression
not
it is
make
said in Berakotb v. 5
a mistake in
evil
it is
sign to a man.
DH^T
mean mcrclv
(Deut.
iv.
9)
}0^D
The
does
written "words."
III.
1014.
03
What need
then to
"And
sa}' ?
they dej^art from thy heart all the days of thy life." Lo
he is not guilty, till he has sat down and suffered them to delest
13.
dom precedes
He
14.
-1
used to say,
Some commentators
trnderstand
its
flavonr; but
it
unneces-
is
meaning liere.
The case under consideration is that
sary to bring in this
of a
man who
remember
for-
readily
The foi-mer
ferred
It
15 are
later ad-
cxi.
fluent
may be
cond clauses of
the
my prayer is
than of philosophy.
interpretation is to be pre-
man
in excess of
He
luis-
10
clause of
"
beginning
The
of
(?)
fear of the
wisdom."
Lord
is
Then
in
lows the
quoting
Srfi-e,
wiites that a
man
should
n012T
and perishes
He who learns
first
the
fol-
We
wUl
DO,
is he? He said to them. He is a workman who has not his tools in his hand,
"wisdom."
marks upon
The saying
is
taken to
a man's fear of
said to them.
A man
fear of
him
knowledge as a
his
other comparison
He
is
to the aciiuisition of
what is he?
no workman,
He
A*
it.
Anfrom Joma:
reading of
is given,
PIRQE A DOTH.
C4.
his
wisdom ^^,
his
23
"Tbalmud"
aucl
Aboth
18 decides for
the latter. On the other side see the
remarks of Sifre upon Deut. xi. 13:
discussions.
i.
my
observe to do
them (Deut.
The
v. 1).
on
and not learning on doing,
The condition
the text
iv.
20
avToO dv
jTuis
may
be compared with
7a/)
Svvarai
in
Joh.
rbv a.5\(piv
a.ya.Trq.v\
S. as
aya-n-Qiv
/^rj
etipa/ce,
taken by bar
The sajings
This ilishuah
is
is
a correspondence in
is also
to the
human
spect to which
Thorah
pies himself in
occu-
own
for its
ncy
...''?
xxvii.
u).
Di'pc'
Eab
built a palace
"'?
for
Di'pK'
said.
It
it is
said
nt'y^
(is.
as
is
if
he
a).
ana-
its
"He who
hedrin 99
2-
17
b,
or action of either of
b).
A man must
A man
to intoxication.
ing
is
sheep which
ers
before drink-
dumb
after drinking
before
its
enough he
is
shear-
strong
is
no
and dances and jests and talks nonknows not what he is doing.
If all this happened to righteous Noah,
how must it be with ordinary men?
sense and
Noah cursed
ing.
his
make
thy pleasure,
to
1518.
III.
Go
man
vulgar, put a
tlie
out of the
worhh
R. Li'ezer ha-Moda'i said,
17.
He
profanes
that
things
Avorld to come.
Bo
R. Ishma'el said,
18.
di\'me decree,
mO
*13JD
mO,
mea-
Bangs
xii. 8),
There
is
a pro-
The
explained
T.
J.
Peah
verb,
'a n'?JD is
I^Jl,
1,
constniction.
Heaven."
him oat
of the
world
and put-
On
{aiwu.)
Thorah increases
life
"
vare
on
v/xeis
Tckj
ypa<pds,
(ii. 8).
'Eptv-
SoKeire
ev
The
fifth
Seder
of
the Mish-
of fes-
tivals.
He who
as meaning,
that the
" one
who who
i.
says
The unveiled
face
may
Cor.
'^^
this
iii.
18).
mishnah
is
who hath
former expression
is
rendered,
world.
PIRQE ABOTH.
6G
and yielding
man
8"
with cheerfulness.
The
test of
reading.
Esto
levis
et facilis
erga
young
but some
of the older commentators assign very
Chald.
s. r.
different
IHC,
2372)
col.
meanings
to the expressions
rendered juventutem.
^3,
is
It
has
also
.
xi. 10.
third meaning,
forced
BEBViCE or iyyapia ('Aruk; " Kashbam"; &c.). For a corresponding use
of the verb cf. Onqelos on Num. xvi.
which
is
The
This expression
ni3]
(i)
to actions,
(ii)
is
used in
to persons.
foimd
not open
is
ninsrin?
to
was formed
ni3,
and woman
persuasion, because
of
earth,
which a
man
little
woman was
which wiU not melt.
In the passage under discussion, the
made
of bone,
mintiTlpreceded by b
^ote)
BO
(see
if
Crit.
if it
well supported, is
is a saying,
Rabbah on Lam.
We read there
ii.
11
is
ambiguous.
the best of
Then
relation
persuasion,
and
which meanings
xi.
man and of a
whom had mintJTl p.
follow tales of a
woman each
of
juvenis.
^^-\
sage
is
b\>]
ception of
ex-
of the 'Aruk,
ditional 471-2,
''in
*KJD1.
Demai."
The reading
of
gives the
III.
19.
the
to
oiien
is
it
man
to lewdness.
objection that
it
is
which
is
the "lightness"
condemned
which
is
In
cumstances.
is
of the city
and
its
"Be
great
"When
thou
young be ?p towards
art
in general terms
in 19 with a "lightness"
ness
G7
19.
manner
like
condemned from
bashful-
a certain point
of thine
age be
quoted by bar
"I?
niJ" (Eashi, as
S.).
"Be 7p
to the
and ni3
to his
On
(E. Jonah).
the whole
amount
of authoiity for
This being a-
of view in
but
ii. 6,
is
mundi
on Jonah
iii.
8)
the text
that a
is
him
at once,
and
it
upon
(Matt. V. 41).
a fair
may
10)
t^'S"l
7p
as describing a
we may read,
t^X"l7 ?p MH,
Esto velox erga caput, and take mj
dyyapla, or
ing
(p.
is
which illustrates
Luke xviii. i 8, and Matt. xi. 12.
Cf. Buxtorf, Lex. s. v. P|Vn, a word
which is used for TV in the Targum on
Prov. vii. 13. If, as is probable, ni?p
CSI denotes primarily an i\a<ppla
(2 Cor. i. 17) which results from want
550,
there
iiiraye fier
(re
dyya-
avrov duo
The Machazor
Yitry,
separate clause.
buck
s. V. "iriK')
gegen
fertig
Vomehmen und
einen
schmiegsam gegen
Eegierer)".
*^ E. 'Aqibafh) ben Joseph, though
descended from non- Jewish parents,
and until middle age averse from
study, became one of the greatest
hghts of Judaism both before and
Gamahel
II,
with
whom,
Sukkah
iii.
9 and elsewhere.
In his
whose daughter he
He
at length married.
ship
man
that
is
was
led captive
(?)
at the destruc-
See Jost,
and was
:
PIRQE ABOTH.
68
He
20.
He
study.
art
They say,
what they are fleeing.
From the nets which men are bringing
upon us. He asks, Is it your pleasure
to come up on to the land, that I and
you may dwell together, as my fathers
dwelt with your fathers? They said
to him. Most foolish of beasts, if we
how
much more in the place of our death
So Israel may be distressed even in
are afraid in the place of oixr hfe,
is
a fence to Tliorali
tithes
according to Ps.
DTIDD
'13
and
said,
xvii. 14,
"]']''
DTIDD
the
life of
world to come,
'Aqiba learned tradition from Eh'ezer ben Hyrqanos, and acquired the
Gimzo, with
whom
Nachum
he stuthed for
22 years, investigating the uses of particles, as D3. nS. p"). "1^?' wherever they
occurred in Scripture (Chagigah 12 a
it
certain
is
To his disciples
who remonstrate: "Thus far," thou
all my days
have been troubled about
this verse
all
xoith
Thou
spirit.
if
he should
When,
said
I,
will it
Now
I not
fulfil it ?"
As he was protracting
and
said:
till
he expired,
"Happy
art
thou E.
Uivh
|?Dfc?"'1.
In
like
manner
it
is
i.e.
He
before
E.
'Aqiba,
springs of wisdom
He was
(iv. 1).
As a comand systematiser of traditions he
was the forerunner of Jehudah haNasi (who was born shortly after his
death), but his work has not been pre-
ed
Paradise "
piler
served in
writing
in
its
original
69
III. 20.
VOWS a fence
wisdom
is
asa)
'
that
its
"
Berakoth
Non
mente
v.
deliberation,
it is
well rendered
Surenhusius:
ed
1.
composita,
K'N"!
^3"ID
n-iTn
a
man
animum
It is said in
lyti'
Deum
in
ns
i::^ ic'sn
prius
intende-
Berakoth
ix.
i6,
hp''
means hold
in
Since 7pr\
light esteem,
or
we
which
is
used
passage, 1 Cor.
A man must
xi. 4, 5.
from his
friend,
" fi'om
"It
is
forbidden to a
lyQ.
is
given
Berakoth 31 a
man
pinB', for
mouth be
When? In
said,
it is
Then
when
the time
the
Some commentators
remark upon 19, that such pinK^
only as is combined with "lightness
of head " is condemned
but others
great things &c."
of tradition in general,
NmiDJD,
of their
fathers."
is
found in the Mishnah. Cf. Sheqalim vi. 1, where it is said that there
was a miDD in the possession of the
houses of E. Gamliel and Chauauiah,
sagan of the priests, with regard to
the place in which the Ai'k was hidden.
also
The
to the oral
is
supplemented or interpreted.
is
Ma-
especially
the text of
Scriptures.
are referred
E. Jonah
of
to fiU his
the
C, and
textual
"Masorah" were
of
nothing in the
Mishnah to limit the generahty of the
ancient date, there
is
word miDJD.
the midst of
pint:',
mouth with
shall om-
is es-
may
5:
"JiriD.
horam
rent."
or
morati, ut
a fence to
to sanctity'
silence.
The
clause omitted by 31
is illus-
(Shabbath 119
a).
The meaning
sanctity
Mishnah
of
life.
It
is
used in the
in paralleUsm with
purity, at the
is
of
said that,
end
of Sotah,
"From
mnt^,
where
it
when Eabban
'0
PIRQE ABOTII.
He
21.
"in imao-ine
lie
made He man
God^"
(Gen.
For a
died."
satiiical classi-
sees,
Buxtorf, Lex.
s.
r.
man
tliat
he was created
it)
it is said,
to liim tliat
for in the
image of
ix. 6).
n'lti'''~lD
is
that
it
and
K'ID.
Man
is
image (Gen.
beloved by
V.
i.
27;
ix.
6),
man
r^H'^.
whose
or likeness
1),
in the image of
Cor.
in
by
xoiVoj'
i.e.
God
XV. 47).
rrji yrj^,
is
makes
The matter
is
ing as
1:
"In
him."
iii.
the likeness of
Hence the
God made He
contrast in
James
iraripa,
Kal
iv
avr-g
Karapwueda
toi)s
yeyovoras.
Compare 1 Joh.
evToXr/v ^x^Mf
TavT-qv Tr]v
roi-s
avdpunrovs
o-'"''
iv.
21
kuI
o-'^tov, tea
between the
and the actual between the
beembryo and its development
tween the "idea" and its temporal
There are two aspects
manifestation.
of the statement that man was made
to ignore the distinction
potential
God
or of his archetype
to
man
and as a conse-
was actually created, and (2) as a falling away of the terrestrial Adam from
In the " Book of the
his archetyi^e.
generations of
ness
but
is
Adam "
described as not
perpetuated
"God
^bv avTOv.
of God...
created
Adam
(cf.
man
whoUy
James
in the
iii.
lost
9):
likeness
own
"
III.
22.
is
v. 1,
3);
known
imago
theh parents
of
Adam was
it
and
him that,
God made He him,
said of
it is
In the likeness of
and
but because
his
that
off-
but
likeness,
it
Targum
Jonathan which
of
71
21, 22.
intro-
tlicy
and
TTOJ,
man
is
a fiiyai &v6pus-
a microcosm,
is
adoiited
by PhUo and the Eabbis. The constituents of man were gathered from
all
The
i.
4):
Man
head
viii. 26).
&c.
has a
Man
Is.
i.
"Why was
2)."
man
"generations" or offspring,
and regards the human race as comprised in Adam as embryo or golem.
tholedoth,
To
this
is
Dnl inX
"He
'\-\T."
n"?1
created
bah
XXIV.)
needs
'
concoction).
To teach thee
created alone?
Israel, it is
reckoned to him as
if he
and whoso-
soitl of Israel, it is
end
end
to
of
by the hand
of
"Thou
form
didst
God, for
it
is said,
me mpl linX,
Adam
firmament, for
it
is
said that
to the
he was
earth.
amendment"
fioi)
(B.
Eabbah
xi).
Ac-
than in
Adam
The saying
himself.
that the first
Midrash.
found in
is
DIK nn?in
The
is
man was
found in
of the Creator's
nSCJTIO, or idea, of
when
moon
come,
shall be
PIRQE ABOTH.
72
(was
that
it
it)
children of the
it is said,
(Deut. xiv.
to
Ye
them
are the
1).
D''ttN"l
SEVEN
days"
of the
XXX.
(Is.
26)
the
of
was created by it
thivn x-)33 nnB*
Compare Joh.
i.
iravra
Tov
Kofffiov'
KOff/jLOS
KOfffj-oi
5t'
(puis
S-vOpuirov
ev
T(^
nnix).
Kal to 0u5s iv
ffKorla avrb
t)
KaTi\a^iv...rjv to
tpUTii^ei,
misn
10;
Kal
Koafi'ii
T^v,
eh
ipxofJ-evov
avTov eyiviTO,
avTov ovK
ov
to aXriOivov
Kal
Kal
fit
Said
satisfactory to
^7
Compare
iroTa-JT-^v
Xva
me
TiKva Geou
pddrf tL
(pavepudy
"
1 Joh.
Tjfuv 6 TraTrjp,
K\y]6<2fjLev....dyair7iTol,
icr/J-ev,
ioofieda'
a progression
work
oidafiev
6^
oVt
edif
is
likened to
likeness" (Gen.
and
i.
it
were)
our
26) is approximative,
l^niDT IDD
and that "In imagine, &c."
TlOXn
twofold
the
implies
possibility
(1)
by means of
wisdom through which the love and
fear of God are acquired, and (2) of
lapsing into chaos and perishing, according to the words of the Psalmist,
of rising
'13
P3^
to perfection
vh'\
1T3 DIX
tlie
spiritual
for
if
man
he might
iii.
dydwriv didwKev
in general. There
from 21 to 23.
The primal man, the embryo of the
race, is created an adumbration of
Elohim Israel is singled out for the
distinction of sonship to nin"": and
is
fyvci},
not
man
than Adam, or
The
son.ship
word which
is
God
and incori^oreal
beings, as angels, and also to judges,
but
to
intellectual
p7n,
2325.
III.
(was
to
that
it
them
is said,
(Prov.
it)
to
73
them that
was created, as
MY
it
LA.W
iv. 2).
is foreseen^; and freewill
judged by grace; and everything
Everything
24.
the world
is
And
is
given.
is
according to
work.
He used to say, Everything is given on pledge {dppaand the net (Eccl. ix. 12) is cast over all the living. The
is open; and the broker gives credit^"; and the ledger
25.
^(ov);
otfice
"/
original
imagine,^' temptatiou is
"Ye
shall be
as Elohim, etc."
mean
indeed
affair's
of
iv.
13),
d(pavr]s ivunriov
but
it
and he
off"
i.
e.
a man's good
condemned or acquitted
is
ac-
38
pondcrance of work
avrov (Heb.
it
k.
The world
is
"
knoicn me.
sitting
(Eom.
of
between the
xi. 22),
men
xPV<^'''<>'''V^
and His
just
of
God
judgment
is to
which
supported,
gives
everything
is
(p. 11)
The
is
inser-
strongly
or nmnularius, the
Lord
of the world,
in the case of
On
the meaning of
its
arm
of the
sentenca will
f\''pD
Chaldaisches Worterbuch,
see Levy's
s. r.
P)p3.
Name ;"
they grant
him
It is
in explanation of
"'Dp"*3
ti'llS (one of
10
who
"
;;
PIRQE ABOTH.
74
26.
m^O
Bays,
(eig.
leilie
T-ny WNI
Pl'-pX, "warte
mir Zeit), icli muss zuvor
'"?
ein gottgefalliges
Werk
The enjoyment
^^
come
is
the -world to
the banquet. In
the New Testament compare Ma/ca/)tot
biuic nritings
as
ot
eis
shall
me
also they
(Ps.
sxiii.
my
foiurth
nor barter,
it
is
it is
they saw
said to
who
are flaming
Shekinah,
pjlTJ
midbar Eabbah
(Prov. xvi. 15),
DH
nj^2EJ'
xxi.),
"In
for
LXX.
*i
The
(?)
Eli'ezer,
rich
xl.
14
xli.
description of behe-
(Be-
excels
said
son of great
countenance is life."
Lower
down in the same chapter the Holy
One is represented as saj-ing to Israel
king's
or
trTroi.yjn.ivov
is
iyKaraTraii^eadai
also,
VT
it
viro
There
is
fire, ai-e
That leviathan
to play with
Cf.
moth.
ministering angels,
be-
Compare Targ. on
it is
24), in
servants
hungry
whom
God, and did eat and drink" (Berakoth 17 a). The word akal, to eat, is
as in the saying of E. Hillel
my
She-
of the
And
said.
mine eneniBS
Behold,
to
creation,
5)...
Thou
in the presence of
shall
is said.
the
come
table,
hold,
me
Thorah, no culture
verricliten.
of
No
said,
Ben
me
men "
'Azariah,
(T. J.
who
is
Berakoth iv.
1).
am
not a son of
III.
2G 28.
/o
no Thorah.
no
culture,
(of
God), no wisdom.
cernment, no
meal''.
He
27.
works, to what
and its roots scanty**; and the wind comes, and uproots
and overturns it. And whosesoever works are in excess of
To a tree whose branches are
his wisdom, to what is he like ?
though all the winds come
abundant
scanty, and its roots
dant,
it,
upon
they
it,
stir it
not from
its place.
R. La'zar Chasmah
28.
DV3
same inwardly
the
It is
as out-
ben 'Azariah's
accession is referred to; and the day
is described as one in which all the
pending controversies were decided. It
should rather be described as the day
on which the principle of decision in
)2, the occasion of
said,
standing."
of the
man
in
for
duties,
its train:
dom
of
and
all
dom," which
vi. 33).
sometimes' identified
is
in
a spiritual sense:
my
majority
(iv.
12), to
On
shall be multipUed,
thy
Ab
J. loc. cit.),
beth din.
According
in the
liel
as president,
'Azariah.
Sabbath
and the
Gama-
foui'th to
ben
said:
"Whose
The Sabbath
of E. El.
Hence,
is it?
to
it is
'^-
Prov.
ix.
life
10
"
The feae
of the
me
eat of
thy days
of
ix.
5, 11).
With
*^
vii.
2i
Has
oSv
avdpi
compare Matt,
Sans aKo^ei /mov
this parable
27
(ppovi/xip,
avTOvs, oixoiwdrjaeTai
6(TTts
cfiKoSo/xTjiyev
avrov
The Eabbinic
ben 'Azariah."
"Come,
parables,
hke those
New
of
T'nD?, To
ich'.it is
76
PIRQE ABOTH.
<5
fifth
ii.
viii. 8).
Niddah rewomen.
On
Nnqpj,
46
an arithmetical method
of exegesis, in which the numerical
/xerpla*, denotes
values of the
Hebrew
bers
are
letters
which,
Thus
mount
Sinai, since
is
identified with
D?D
(00
+ 30 + 40)
is
On nElpn,
Chald. Worterbuch.
According to the
usual interpretation, niNIDIS denotes
"Deliciae, Cupedise, Ediilium vel obso-
vel ante
et
delicatis,
and the
which stimulate
the appetite for wisdom, or (2) with
greater probability, as small and unimintellectual dehcacies
The
because
first
the
tria see
down
it is
s. v.
m,
go
6.
The
Temple was to stand 410 years,
for it was said (Lev. xvi. 3) " Thus
(nXT3) shall Aaron come into the holy
place;" or, by gematria, " (2+7+1+400)
years shall he come into it." This
:
Thorah.
adornment
(fr.
7repi(p4pia,
approval,
referring to
who compUed
Or
nopcp^pa) of
wisdom,
ac-
of ypap-ixaTda,
"Eab Nathan
the 'Aruk."
CHAPTER
Ben Zoma^
1.
man
every
for
Who
said,
is said,
it
is
From^
IV.
He
wise?
my
all
Who
2.
He
mighty?
is
Zoma, a younger
Sliime'on ben
God"
of
(Prov.
he obtains
Ub
Paradise (Chagigah
on Cant.
zitha,
him
entered with
4).
i.
:
"honey"
in the
metaphysics.
in a
'
'
xxv.
(Prov.
16)
of
kothoTb).
The
Zoma's
first
saying
original context:
is
for its
own
rendered in
its
sake.
It is written,
silver,
and
Then
of the Lord,
and
find the
for its
who
knowledge
an
by the help
sake,
of high, low,
Why is
to
to be foimd,
it is
all
it
it
own
is
as a great
Thorah
like
man
is
Give
inferior,
water, so a great
to say to
an
man
water ? because
me
is
a di-ink of
not ashamed
Teach
inferior,
me
one
one
letter (Chazitha,
And why
on Cant.
is it like ^{iXov
because, as small
gi"eat, so little
(Prov.
i.
iii.
2).
18) ?
ones (Tha'anith 7
a).
Then
(cf.
follows
Makkoth,
ben
of
dom
and values
man
As a
4, 5).
ii.
for it
a)
masters
him has
who
^-
;;
PIRQE ABOTH,
78
He
said,
is
that
slow to anger
is
spirit
is
xvi. 32).
Who
3.
rich
is
He
that
is
for
When
it
"
Happy
art
vricked " is
'
'
(Sukkah 52
-which he
b),
"
and
shall
it
peace to
him
said
it is
him
that
is
and afterwards
The
34 b).
man
which a
soul,
preserve:
commanded
is
"Take heed
-to
and
thyself,
in order to do this, he
must
to a
Even the
of the yeger.
good, for
said:
is
it
evil ye<;er is
it
that
is
" (Gen.
Good, that
is
the good
*1V*
1^\ but
the evil
i.
31).
very good,
for
which a
man would
Eabbah
and a
child, and a woman are things which
the left hand should repel, and the
The
ix).
evil nature,
and
its
is
called "yecjer"
existing originally,
(Gen.
viii.
from
whereas
is evil
21),
is
19), Peace,
and to
far off,
off first,
It is a characteristic of
Talmudio
is
re-
"|nt^^
and
I*?
mti to the
Such twobeing
In the text we may perhaps suppose a play upon the words, ashreka,
rash.
to
and
(Is. Ivii.
that
be well with
iropicrfids /J.eya^
avrapKeias.
rj
evd^fia
vi.
ixerdi.
man
RICH
man
Berakoth
to
by
added
vovs, is
Aboth,
great
Addenda).
man
nature
is
is
that all
therefore our
memory have
whom
"and
ix. 5,
ix.
14
he in
strong;
It is said in
later,
the evil
BECTJLDM.
IV.
35.
79
Who
4.
is
for precept
from transgression;
is
God
is
here applied
more
that
is,
One
generally.
who
he
interpretation
God
(hi.
21),
known Eabbinic
also
be
principle,
illustrated
not attributed to
will
despise
shall be despised.
they
defilement,
comes
which may
from
God
evil is
not said,
it is
them,"
New
the
Testament.
" I
is
himself,
whose
in
men
honours
reckoned as honouring
they
but,
for i^urification,
him
he
if
they help
him"
his customer
its fragrance.
"
The memory
7)
of the
by his
of
the
(Berakoth 19
5
Thorah"
Shime'onben'Az(z)ai, prospective
Bon-hi-law of
R. 'Aqiba, appears to
and trans-
because
of
God
next verse
it is
said,
And
you, be ye
and multiply.
Ben 'Azai was one of the four who
fruitful,
1).
"He looked,
"Ben
menting,
about
thee.
He
He
said to him.
Yea,
employed.
He
said to him,
Nay, I
and concatenating in
Thorah, and from Thorah onward to
the Prophets, and from the Prophets
to the Scriptures ; and the words were
was but
b).
precept,
yea!
induces
sitting
Jews regard
rTQ")!
in
it,
of marriage,
and PinS,
'
tion
single
acts.
When
discharges or disregards
man
duty he
it
unto him as
fire.
80
PIIIQE ABOTH.
reward of precept
for the
is
transgression'^,
is
He
any thing
7.
11.
the hope of
man
name
fanes the
The
the
is
erring
worm.
of
Heaven
spirit,
for
in secret,
as
is
of
NAME^
The passing act of transgression leads
up to a settled course of evil. He who
the power of educating and predisposing himself for good or evil. The
first
performance of duty
Name
cursus
I.
*'
Woe
Sukkah 52
2. (ix.), cf.
Sanhedi-in 99b
interprets
Is.
is
rewarded by an
a,
and
v.
18:
ished forthwith.
Sins
man
is
pun-
ignorance
of
woman, and
first
slender,
him not
it
own
sake,
(alone), for in
after
its
many
others
let
him not
chazi said,
My
Elisha restored to
5;
lord,
this
Sauhedrin 100
is
(
her son,
life "
a).
(2
whom
Kings
viii.
feeling of re-
God.
This feeling
is
manifested,
wUl be the
cause of many others, For " precept
leads on to precept, and transgression
is
to transgression."
it
doing.
This
is
interpreted
by E.
its
that a
man
is
tions,
70), for
it is
the
custom to abstain from using the Biblical names of God, except in citations
from the Bible ; and even when Elohim
is necessarily
brought
in, it is often
IV.
qim.
we
TllV
In the trea-
Qabbalistic works,
DiT' and
tise
may
easily
himself,
for
"
mention of
God "
all
dii-ect
avoided,
is
and
Heaven
ex-
an
in
3,
I.
12;
17; V.
25.
24,
is
16;
2,
II.
16 (note),
iv. 7,
It
is
a well-known
that,
Compare
Oeov.
xxiii.
22
dfivvei
iv
Kal
T(j5
ofj-offas
Travra
ry
ev
iroifiTe
of
which
" Let
all
Heaven"
16).
II.
Cf.
13, 17;
iii.
*'
The memory
5, 6, 15,
22;
hemistich
One should
The use
reference
man who
is
these
of
made
is
no longer
initials,
to a
living.
?' ^'T
or
Vitry.
Compare Job vi. 10 " for I
have not concealed JJ^Hp ^"IDN, the
words of the Holy One."
In like
manner d dyios is used in the book of
:
Ecclesiasticus,
Kal ovopiacriq,
toC dyiov
On
the other
fiTj
hand,
Name
of
is
(v. 6).
also
is
when
There
or alone
IV. 32),
v. 7.
its
II.
ovpavtp
/cat
(ill.
of a benediction, as XI H "|n3,
ry
is,
name
The use
"just"
QeoO
Mishnah language
in the
Matt,
(1
?;
ini-
tiated.
also
iv
86^av
tials
t)
St Paul again
avrov.
els
efficacy
^aai-
Kad-qfiiv^i) iirdvo}
writes,
it
of the phrase
^acriXeia
pressions
(v. 31),
81
He
8.
ings,
68.
euXoyrjTds stands
God
in
Mark
alone as a
xiv. 61.
name
DtJTJJ
used
The Name
a
as
"God."
found in
(iv.
substitute
Traces
of
v. 14)
for
this
niH'',
usage
was
or
are
stranger,
land,
as he
him
as well the
i^ijXdov,
render 3p3 not blaspheme, but pronounce distinctly. So the LXX., 'Ovo-
firjSev
John
Since to 6vofxa
was used as a synonym for " God,"
idvLKi2v
(3
the actions of
7).
God
himself appeared
to be attributed to the
Name
of God.
of expres-
pA^uv 8e TO
TovaBu.
n"in\ which
practice
6vop.a
Kvpiov
davdrtj} 6ava-
The non-pronunciation
of
version was
11
PIBQE AEOTH.
82
teach, they grant
him the
and
faculty to learn
to teach
him
he
faculty
tlie
E,.
made,
tlie
may
to
an
infinite dis-
ways, either
(1)
explained in two
is
make
not ivords of
Thorah a crown, or
(2)
disciples
explanation
may
scholars into
14
lais
Nedarim 32
be supported by St
Pliil. iv. 1,
in his expedition
n30 ^y form
the word
h^^]}.
Job v. 7 (as
noticed by P. Ewald) is made to
mean, not that "man is born to
trouble," but that he is born to learn
in order to teach. Another example
artifices
of the
tials,
of
exegesis,
method
is
of
ni3n
''k^'S")
afforded by the
Amen, which
is
or ini-
word pS,
Qabbalistically
ex-
pX3, God
1"
Another reading
is
"
Make it
The
11
explanations
Thorah;
of.
"He who
who
inclines his
the Thorah,
the Chazan
say,
and some
He who
He
floor,
say,
reading
it
talk
whUe
and some
it
open,
and go out."
1-
He who
He
IV.
He
015.
83
may judge
and say not, Accept ye my opinion, for
they are free-to-chose", and not thou.
Jochanan said, Whosoever fulfils the Thorah in
13.
12.
One
alone save
neglects the
15.
He who
who com-
doing iu justice
15
for
litigants.
judge
admonished
is
he on his
to
may
learn
to lie."
"He who
1*
pufis
up his
heart,
visage'
is
for
it
said
is
him
satiate
how
They shall be
abundantly satisfied with the fatness
of thy house ; and thou shalt make
them drink of the river of thy plea-
behold, he
He
foolish.
is
is
called
foolish because
eyes,
folly,
for (Prov.
there
is
him"
(E.
more
sxvL 12
xxix. 20)
hoiJe of a fool
Jonah).
3b;" Whatsoever
cf.
Horaioth
individual
who
practises
it is
an
released,
to
^^
!*
It
rests
self for
and he who
study will
opinion
it
upon them.
is
of idlers
they will
it
1'^
the
(1
him
to protect
him
from Thorah
be given over into the hands
of lions, bears, thieves, and
idly desists
See note
God.
adopt thy
keeiJS a
robbers.
i*"
a).
not the
chose whether
He who
watchers given
presumptuous."
than of
To exemplify the
it is
only,
and
attributed directly to
4.
We
Joh.
ii.
1),
one who
is called
to a
::
84
PIRQE ABOTH.
ment.
person's aid, which
haps
rendered, per-
is
COMFORTER in Joh.
wi-ongly,
xiv.
With this
Mishnah compare Shemoth Eabbah
26;
16,
xxxii
XV. 26;
man
" If a
xvi.
7.
cept,
gives
him one
The angel of
the Lord encampeth round aboxit them
that fear Him. If he performs two
precepts He gives him two angels to
said (Ps. xxxiv. 7)
it is
He
For
he performs
him
thy side,
at
right
hand
host, for
it is
chariots of
it is
said
is
The
^9
mouth
of
ful
and
Said R.
right,
AU
aloes
all
all
thy
mT'J^
mean
transgressions
2,
God
that
just persons
thy ways.
all
'
(Ps. xci, 7)
'
it is
shall give
is
or transgressors,
The
which
repentance gives not respite, nor does
the day of atonement atone, nor have
Biifferings a purgatorial efficacy, but
impardonable
these
till
DEATH purges (Is. xxii. 14), is profanation OF THE NAME (Joma 86 a).
The wise man, 31t3n "l^\ delivers
the citadel of the body from TD^ by
means of repentance and good works
(Nedarim 32b). Said E. Ele'azar b.
E. Jose, All the righteousness and
piety that Israel perform in this world
make
bear
water
tcind
scatters
dissipates
wine;
and death
is
harder than all of them, but righteousness deUvers from death (Prov, x.
2; BabaBathra 10 a).
R. Jochanan Sandalarius
IG.
name
in the
is
that which
Whatsoever assemblage
and
the name of duty will not in the end be
said,
not in
is
8."
established.
R. La'zar
17.
said.
usual reading.
"Dear unto
reading:
which
oioi,"
thee as thine
may have
arisen from
ii.
man
pater
Si
(et
redimat)
et
magistrum suum."
must not rise up before
deinde
scholar
is
exceed that of
33
'
'
each
one
to
a<!Cording
The two
his
i.
where
is
if
mme
be a master, where
Si pater ip-
trem,
him,
magistrum
redimet
prius
disciple
honour."
magister ipsius
et
"
17.
then I be a
honoub? and
my
Heaven" (Qiddushiu
is made to the
where allusion
b),
practice of standing
evening at
which
is
"The
up morning and
Prayer,"
/car e^oxqv,
He who
standing.
controverts his
strife
is
as
if
he engaged
feae?"
if I
(Eph.
is
The claims
is
as
if
he did
it
God himself is
vi. 7).
of a
and
diligently
"
Thorah.
and teaches
11:
of the world,
prfficedit.
...res
it
is
my
delight to serve,
who
is
nam
pater
produsit in hunc
mun-
thought,
magistri praecedit,
eum quidem
God
who
Eab
Eab
is as if
ejus,
qui ipsum
clad
who
originates
mundum
Cant.
futurum.
new
V.
10).
lessons
them
to
day" (Targ.
PIRQE ABOTH.
86
and the
fear of thy
18.
Jehudah
Thalmud amounts
Be
said,
Thalmud,
careful in
the crown
and the crown of
24) but the crown
19.
of Thorah,
of Priesthood,
it
went up
all
the worlds,
three in judgment
four
into
He was employed
Thi-ee hours
in Thor.vh
come
shall
three
man and
The
Deut. xxxii).
foiu-th quarter
be
equivalent
to
curacy.
above in
7,
where
distinction is
and
THK Najie.
tional
it
is said
made between
that no
uninten-
deliberate profanation of
So in Chagigah 5 a, it is
with reference to the last verse
of Ecclesiastes, " He weighs out to
said,
him
who
errors
as deliberate
forgets his
Name
the
of
God
sins."
He
Thalmud commits a
where
it is
Law
the
six
As long as they
Shevi ha-mephorash.
said elsewhere
himself, that
He
in heaven with
Name upon
His head.
A man
where there are facilities for instruction, and should not trust to himself
for the acquisition of the knowledge of
Thorah. He must go to the Thorah,
and not expect the Thorah to come to
him. If he associates himself with
scholars he wiU be well grounded in
it by their aid, for the knowledge of it
is acquired by association.
See pp.
30, 47.
must
trust to his
instraction:
action"
have themselves
dejieud not
for
it
upon thine
man
companions
"Say not
Spy).
One
the Holy
of
sits
"Action depends
(iii. 12).
on Thalmud, and not Thalmud on
deadly sin
(Sifrc,
compared to a
is
^*
119 b).
to
'Abodah
"He
said
23
thine associates
for^*
fourfold di\-ision is
here
1).
is
2-
after thee
to the height,
parts.
20.
phet,
for error in
to sin'^l
hands
associates,
gone
to
who
learn,
to
lY. 1823.
will confirm it
unto thcc
standing (Prov.
iii.
87
own under-
tliinc
5).
21.
nor the
afflictions of
Be beforehand
22.
man
ing^^ every
and be a
tail to
Jions,
in salut-
to
foxes".
23.
own understand-
Thorah,
of
is
proof for
20),
He
it,
for
it
is
said (Prov.
Compare
xiii.
men
Eccl.
man
to hear
vestibule is
which however
So
We
are unable
to
every
form
Peace of
of greeting,
him,
let
him
for it is said,
it
And
if
he salutes
it, he is
it is
said
(Is. iii.
For ye have eaten up the vineyard the spoil of the poor is in your
14),
"They
said
of E.
man
ever anticipated
tion,
(Berakoth 17
^^
head
"Be
him
in saluta-
a),
to
tail
to foxes,"
thyself a tail,
"
and
lions,
Thy
and not a
gloi-y is to
make
to abase thyself,
and
with
identified
Bar
expected.
answer the
questions \Miy do the wicked flouiish?
Why do the righteous suffer?
^6
generally
it
irpodvpov,
S,
(see
it
Crit.
Note)
should be writ-
Sinners
world to come; he
death
will
be
Mill
with
answer,
that
it
repentance
is
which has made the separation between him and his companion. " Sufi'er
me then," he will say, " to go and repent ;" but it will be answered that
the time for repentance has gone by,
for "this world is like a sabbath, and
the world fi-om which thou camest is
like the
sabbath eve:
if
man
pro-
shall
less
foxes.
And
if
PIRQE ABOTH.
88
the world to come
majest
He
24.
good works in
this
better
come^";
come than
to
is
all
world than
is
the
life
life
of the world
spirit in the
to
world
of this world.
25.
the
all
Conciliate
said.
not thy
him
Shemuel ha-Qatan
26.
a
man
said'",
if
man
provides
what
land,
ness
shall
i.
15
;"
but
it is
really a traushtera-
paid for
is
it,
hand the
outweighs
come
them
"one hour"
of
way
that,
ary
is
better
than a thousand."
31
is
when
thine
of him, Alas
of
'Ezra
meek pious
And
again,
one, disciple
the
elders
an upper chamber in
Jabueh, and Bath Qol went forth and
said to them. There is among you one
worthy of the Holy Spirit, only that
the generation is unfit and they cast
their eyes on Shemel ha-Qatan.
And
why was his name called Qatan ? Because he made himself Kttle.
But
some say, because he was scarcely less
than Shemuel ha-Eamathi. And when
he died, they used to say of him, Alas,
entered
tion of TpiKKiviov.
^o
Shemoel
what
land,
Rejoice not
into
meek pious
to
Shemuel
comment,
enemy
falletb,
and
89
when he stum-
let
is
paper ^'.
eats
who
28.
who
is
he like
29.
there
in
is
said,
new
which there
but what
flask,
is
therein
Shemuel sup-
of theosophical
of words, as a
driven
to
apostasy... The
the late
Dr
faction of Gamaliel.
3'-
ment
in
many
original."
Elisha' ben
is
is
a Biblical
name.
ischen Umdichtung.
1),
he began
He
and became
Judaism; and accordin the Talmudic accoimt of the
ultimately
apostatised,
33
to
him (Aboth
Learning in youth
a derider of
N. xxiii).
ingly,
R.
is also
;
and
name
only
ters
3^
suppressed, and he
is
is
" other."
tive
Dr Ad. Neubauer,
" Talmudical
ture "
on
E. Jose
young as
(Philological
in a report
Society,
1876),
notices a
ethe's
'
and
dissatis-
is
On
may
con-
the contrary, as a
tain
old wine,
new
so the
flask
mind
of
12
the
PIRQE ABOXn.
90
and
30.
lust,
and
ambition, put a
He
revive
and the
living to
be judged
aged
mind
the
of the
is
for to
man ?
which
reflection,
like wine,
vessel.
am
and
than the
world.
Great
standing.
wise
men
ix.
TToKaiOIJS, K.T.\.
The comparison
WINE,
oil,
of
Thorah
to water,
is said in
ye9er,
up in
1 Job.
capKos,
T]
ii.
15 of the
and misan-
tliropy.
used
compare Matt.
nations of the
^dWovuiy
+ i + v ( = 70)
The same
2s
Kal
oiiSi
judgment."
For another application of the para17:
more beloved
is
Kal
ii.
16:
ij
twv
iTriOv/jda
t;
is
summed
firiOvfila
t^j
6<p0aXft.ui',
note X
comes down
works its way
first
coming age:
of the
grows bad
if
Nay,
it
as
grows old
it
P3p2
is like
;L"-n?0
Is
with Thorah?
and every
bour,
saying,
all
Know
the Lord
for
they shall
least of
them,
Lord"
(Jer.
xxxi.
34).
Tore 5^ evi-
xiii. 12).
Nini".
Or
is
it
like
^"
"
Cor.
IV.
witness,
with
He
and
whom
there
3032.
the
is
91
is
His, and
know
that
according to plan.
he considereth
xxxiii. 15).
all
their
The world
is
works"
(Ps.
to be judged
possesses
power ami
strict justice
and
'Avt15i,kos,
CHAPTER
By
1,
And what
leanied therefrom
^
V.
The world
described as created
is
is
more
is
"and God
immediate result
>
'13 ^n"'1
said."
NIH
ICiS
^D
implied in
God
In the beginning
heavens and the
IT'EJ'NIIl,
created
earth," since
the
it is
fi' "lanl:)
xxxvi. 6).
In Pirqe K.
EL
9,
Hi
ii.
ten
iii,
18),
i.
3, 6,
the last
woman.
In Bereshith Eabbah
"Saying"
implied in JT'tJ'NIS
'K
nni
(i.
is
taken as
the second in
2):
26j
i.
man
i.
it
by
iii.
18.
said in the
re-
In Chagigah 12
a,
name
ten "things," or
mil, and
'ID
of Eab, that by
tDHil, the world
clwchmah,
cliesed, gehiirah,
among
of
of
fiat
much
laboured so
sinners
described as
is
is
H; "by
the letter
mouth."
Various other ways of representing
the creative process are found in the
Rabbinic writings.
identified with
and with
Thorah, which
Wisdom
who am
'Apxv<
where the
IT't^KI
(Prov. vui.
is
1),
first
"-a
God
word
(Jalqut
Israel
is also
agent:
"By
"By
1:
1.
created,
is
me,
&c."
read as two,
The
2).
ideal
ii.
3),
who
God
"From
The point
a single
of
"God
omnipotence.
each word,
created,
"1121,
&c."
that pro-
V.
But
Saying?
was
it
1,
93
2.
tliat
wicked,
who
to
2.
He,
One, blessed
is
an
it is
angel, for
tliere
was created
By
heavens made
and
all
the
host
of
"
them by the breath of his mouth
(Chagigah 14a).
The siibjects of n''t^'^3, and of
n23"lD, the chariot (cf. Ezek. i.),
this derivation
by Josephus' descripB. J. ii
TOFS
all
fXVffTTJpiSv
TL
8.
(pplKTOV
5,
7}
tQv 'Mov cnwTr)] Karacpalverai, and perhaps this will also explain the Greek
equivalent Oeup-qriKot, which Suidas
Hebrew word
D"'Sk^n in
kalim
v. 6,
show how
name
as the
it
might be adopted
of the sect."
See Pro-
ries
sapiens qui
fuerit
intelligit.
nunquam
muudum; nempe id quod
trasset
in-
su-
pra
est,
est, et
set
mundum"
(Chagigah
not
10
improbably
imjstk; for
(1)
that
V. 16),
denotes
name
the
or Essene,
secret,
or
secret,
V.
is
given.
Noah.
It
is
said of
dor ha-mahbul
ii. 1).
may bo remarked
"
captivity,
their
days
and
(of respite)
earth.
wiU cause
Gen.
vii.
4,
10?
They were
";
PIEQE ABOTH.
94
till
He
brought
the
(Gen.
xi.
10
2G),
are reckoned
excluding Noacli.
Noah
58 years old
yet
when
that
father was
if
Noah prolonged
tions,
to
longsuffer-
voking Him,
came.
Till
although
for
He
And
till
were pro-
Abraham our
father
dees."
xii. 1).
"And
4.
6,
He waged
(xiv. 14).
The bondage
7.
of his pos-
terity
made up for aU
and WTOUght good
which counterpoised all their evU, and
delivered them from punishments
(R. Jonah).
But the like is not said
of Noah, who was only relatively
righteous: he was "perfect in his
(xxii. 2).
For other ways of
making up the number of the trials
A t refers to Midrash Thillim, and to
the " Mishnah of E. Nathan " (Aboth
R.N. xxxiii), which reckons them as
own generations"
Abraham our
father
their shortcomings,
(Gen.
vi.
9),
but
putation.
1.
Nimrod sought
to slay
2.
Nimrod
cast
him
he
would not worship his idols, and the
fire had no power over him to burn
him (Targ. Jonathan, Gen. si. 28
into the Jiery
furnace,
BereshithEabbahxssviii).
E.
Jonah,
is
because
This, says
Isaac
in his circumcision.
"
nor less?
the Sea.
It
V.
38.
95
and he withstood them all to sliew how great was tlie love of
Abraham our father.
Ten miracles were wrought for our fathers in Egypt
5.
;
Ten
8.
which
fell
for Is-
rael in EgjT)t
upon
The
then* oppressors.
made
out in various
Thus
tians.
is
it
said in Mekiltha
('T
2.
3.
1.
It
He
gave them
reckoned as follows
in
loc.
Jal-
qut 234
K. Eli'ezer xlii
this
On
saying
see
Crit.
Note.
The
may be
wrought on behalf
"
This verse
miracles
of the Israehtes.
is cited in
'Erakin
iii.
5,
tongue."
If
the skies,
it is
added,
'
:
'
God
are
with respect to
sage);
the
calf,
are
details
given
07ie;
Fur-
by the way
(fol.
of
Thanchuma
became
pare Midrash
No
Sanctuary ^
is
the
were condemned
in
15).
"In
all
likewise in
in
all this,
Him.
their
But
the Divine
miracles with
in His
Holy
them contrary to
nature,
His sanctuary
was still in the midst of it " (E. Obadiah ben Jacob of Sforno).
Of miracles not specified in this
city whilst
IT'TinT
"
96
PIRQE ABOTH.
woman
and the
and an uncleanness befel not the
highpriest" on the day of the Atonement; and a fly" was not
seen in the slaughterhouse and a defect was not found in the
sheaf'^j nor in the two loaves'^; nor in the shewbread"; and
tlie
porch, -without.
they rejoiced
If it
grew white
it
They arranged
if
it
iv.
How
8).
From
table of Elisha'.
air aroimd.
The
gum on
ha-Shanah
The
67a, &c.
thread
Joma
is
Compare
evil
the
connected with
VI. 8:
Is.
i.
18 in
ad desertum
savour "
wliitening of the
31b).
accessisset,
cum
hircus
albescebat
fly,
pothecary to send
(Rosh
purifies the
goes forth
2),
Joma
Thorah-flame, an
(Deut. xxxiii.
ti'X
(Berakoth Gl
The Tar-
a).
name, which
By
lies at
and
and corrupts a good
doors of the
causes death,
1-
a-
a stinking
forth
is like
heart
^omer
51)
(p.
ointment.
is
meant
either
was offered at the time of the Passover, pnd consisted of first fruits of
At Pentecost,
the barley harvest.
fifty days later, " the two loaves," the
fii^t fruits of the wheat harvest, were
"No woman
ever
miscarried
Ishmal
b.
Joma
seven sons,
all of
whom
ministered in
the high-priesthood.
11
purity.
"Behold, now,
this is an holy
man
onered
morrow after the seventh sabbath shaU ye number fifty days and
ye shall offer a new meat offering unto
the Lord. Ye shall bring out of your
habitations two wave loaves of two
to the
tenth deals:
flour
of
I perceive that
God "
(2
Kings
they shall be of
fine
The 'omer
first fruits
(Lev. xxiii. 15
For further
Menaclioth
x.
17).
details see the
The
Mishnah,
^omer was to be
V.
rains quenched not the pile
(Is. xlix.
things were
2)
(x.
of Jeru-
from the
of
"131D I'V,"
which
13
the shewbread:
its
(1
Sam.
xxi. 7),
when
still
9).
"A
wrought on
Jerusalem; and
me
Menuchah lib).
the 'azarah
ever unable at such time to find lodging and maintenance in the city, however great the concourse of people.
The " ten miracles," though wrought
in relation to the
but
The
suns'^.
On
15
is said
it
sacrifice
not
it
in
is
hypocrisy (Berith
the day
place
between the
created
ealem, unless
ing
The
Ten
9.
is
man
taken
and
97^
8, 9.
all
Temple
festivals, did
itself,
D'?*Li''n''n D''''Ln
discussed
how the
ten
(cf.
Crit.
and the
NOKTH, the
poor
rejoiced,
because
was
to
if
kept
'.
if
it
inclined
were troubled,
and the householders rejoiced, because
towards
it was to be a dry year, &c.
the EAST, all rejoiced: towards the
WEST, all were troubled.
to the SOUTH, the poor
and
created between
to the sabbath.
It is felt to
be im-
period:
only be thought of
as
ctTTo
Kara^oXTJs
that
Koafiov.
preordained
" It
saith,
created
be-
13
"
PIRQE ABOTH.
98
mouth
and
of the earth";
the
signs
There
and
the sun;
He,
He
to
What
Moses,
seekest thou?
is
is
concerning
xvi. 30).
He
it
therefore,
and as
said
before
Bereshith, he saith
they were
that
explanation of their not being mentioned with the rest of the work of
Bereshith,
to
because
is
it
was impossible
tell
(p.
^8
('Obatliah Sforuo).
WELL.
pretation,
for in fact
and
all of
in
may be
As
"ten things,"
number
to
to be
is
made
one reckoning,
the abstract
or
concrete,
up.
how
the
According
the writing in
(1)
(2)
the
writing-instrument
(maktheb)
selves,
disputed
is
it
made
Jonathan, as cited in
Targum of
note 18. The
in the
sacrificed instead
Bemidbar Eabbah
the suns.
" "But
thing,
as
is,
doubtless,
is
it
(?)
inter-
opened its mouth and uttered a song (Numb. xxi. 17). But
some understand the rock which
Moses smote, i. e. the IJnI which
it
went about with Israel in the wilderness" (Bar S.). Compare also Bemidbar Eabbah xix. In either case there
is
the
some
difficulty in
expression,
accounting for
"<^e vwuth
of
the
well."
on Numb.
xxii.
Targum
28:
of Jonathan
"Ten
things were
if
the Lord
make
new
(2)
according also to
"
V.
99
0.
mouth of the ass and the bow (Gen. ix. 13) and the manna
and the rod'; and the shamir-worra^*'; and the character; and
the writing'; and the tables.
And some say, the spirits"
;
Pesacliim 54
a,
mouth of the
the mouth of
ass
the wicked.
And some
of
up
say likewise
it
48
b).
when
the sabbath
buds;
generation,
after
till,
the
death of
Joseph,
it
Pharaoh.
letters
(p.
70)
(Pirqe
Israel
B.
HTl
Ji'DJ
human
(Gen.
24)
i.
his right
hand
xci.
7).
Said
out
It
of
is
the
clothes
of
students,
He who
know about them must take
ashes, and sprinkle them by his
feet.
wishes to
sifted
Chald.)
or
bed,
Eli'ezer sl).
"'*
The SHAMIR
(see Buxtorf,
Lex.
Fii-st
he wrote
stones were
cleft,
seal
by the sun,
formed by water.
may
is
stand against
Asmodeus, king
citt
OtJ'K'O
Solomon, having
it.
got possession of
to
iD''
it
is said
(1
or as a channel
a black one
of a firstborn
it
not steal
seal its
He
and to build the temple. They frequent desolate places, and are especially to
100
PIRQE ABOTH.
also;
ram
of
tongs
6);
and the
And some
say,
10.
clod,
Members
of
a).
came
explained by
At
"
If
he has occasion
pied
and
if
before them.
And
things,
^'^
which
it
finitum.
in-
subject in hand,
2^
this
God
is
the Creator
Woe
" E. Jose
signifies,
3)
and his
replies
are
of interpretation.
that
He
trine
if
"I
lasting arms."
who said; "Doth God pervert judgment?" (viii. 3), and was rebuked by
-^
The reading
said,
is like
Elihu,
"
101
V. 10, 11.
main
transgressions*'.
comes.
Job for misapprehending his meaning,
for " I
(ix.
know
He
4.
2).
poiat,
is
it
so of a truth, &c."
interrogates
unlike Eliphaz
(iv.
to the
and
7);
sabbatical year
each to each.
proper order,
its
And
against thee.
5,
truth,
16).
he would
wisdom, &c."
that
secrets of
And he admits
7.
unlike
three
the
the
friends
of
whom EUhu's
wi-ath was
had found no
answer, and yet had condemned Job "
Job, against
(xxxii. 3).
25
or "bo-
"D13,
Bar
such as comprise
S.)
divisions, as the
body
many members.
On
uses of
f\)i
many
sub-
divided into
is
the
idiomatic
" And
it
saith,
Lev. xsvi.
2
of
apportioned as follows.
famine are
Partial
1.
neglect of tithing
tial
'
And
is
As
is
it
I caused
said in
it
to rain
lect of tithing is
"of nOiriD" or
punished by famiao
and drought
ing.
Jonah),
ruined by marauders
csMS,mg destruction
or
(ii.)
a famine
stroy
3.
are,
degrees of
famine;
the sword;
exile.
the
are committed,
three
pestilence;
and
transgressions
according to Sfomo,
in relation to tithing
judgment ; pro-
upon
of that
kinds or
Amos
dif-
like
ferently reckoned
that is right"
strange wor-
Name;
fanation of the
A famine
of entire
destruction,
vii. 23).
consumption
re-
br^iss,
is
under
"
PIRQE ABOTH.
102
Name,
and
shedding of blood
for
and
and
At
15.
in the fourth
in fleeing because of
"I
where there
will
(Lev.
xxvi,
16):
read
not
behalah,
The
lah, or cake (Shabbath 32 b).
divine judgments are " measure for
measure "
The
Mekiltha
terrestrial court is
('H
Commandment.
is sent as a judgment
crimes which have not
self to
when
"But
to
Pestilence
for capital
it to some place
no pestilence for he
who flees does not deny the omnipresence of God, but bows his imcircumcised heart and bears the yoke of
migration as a punishment for his
sins. And let him not embolden him-
is
jurisdiction, or cogni-
thou shalt
field,
of its
for
authorised to
are,
inflict
even then,
thus he
who
deserves to be stoned,
dies of avvdyxv-
See Af,
for
a year
it is
And
the sab-
for
6).
thy servant,
The seventh
year was called, the year of ha-shevUttah, the release (Deut. xv. 9
xxxi.
10),
^'
appropriation of
what
owing to the
have
should
The
teunium leads
to pestilence in
the
V.
1216.
10.3
and
In the fourth
at
(year),
in the seventh, on
tlie
sixth
immediately
years
He
IG.
^3y "iCyJO is
28, 29:
of three years
shalt lay
it
The
following.
the tithe
all
that saith.
HND, that
and anguhis.
nHD'J'
oblivio,
spicilerjiuin,
:
And
field,
and the
stranger,
fatherless,
and the
come, and
shall
satisfied
eat
and be
God may
bless thee in
shall
all
The third
"
called " the year of tithing
xxiv. 19:
his
(Numb,
xviii.
21),
iu
as
tival,
On
these tithes
Mishnah-Tracts named
see the
after
(C),
"
And
years
six
eat
let
thou shalt
gather in
may
of
ment comes
for
shall be
it: it
the fatherless,
for
stranger,
God may
In this year, as
thou shalt
for the
and
12).
and hast
field,
field,
year
(Deut. xx\'i.
"When
widow
for the
work
of
thine hands."
3-
MiDDAH denotes
measure,
and
The
&c.
"Ethics"
The fii'st
described
is
the
of
is
of Aristotle's
title
rendered
that
nnDH
"middoth"
of
IDD.
here
man who
the
is
neither
self-sacrificing,
regard
it
as
Others,
spirit
of
indiffer-
ence to the welfare of others: "Behold, this was the iniquity of thy
sister
104
PIRQE AEOTH.
Mine
is
but some
say, It is
is
thine,
an indifferent character;
is
Sodom
the character of
Mine
is
thine,
'
man
the
who
as one
ovxl
(Matt.
'am ha-areg
6],
ol
TekCivaL
"He
46);
is
[here used as
of the
give,
ovtus
fromwhom he
vi.
34);
iroioCcriv
called
a singular, see
ii.
desiring to take
world,
and
increases be-
extreme,
to
(p. 48),
make
'
He who
gives,
who
is
receives
"wicked."
n''J"l33]
It
as
For a
out.
all
be remarked on the
use of this word, which means intermediate, that the " via media," and
the " Kad' iirep^oKrjv 656s^' of excel-
attempts
the
to
improbable derivation
1.
"Von
T'Dri es
may
less
33
Dn''Dn
"
(Kuenen).
the words
reverses
loss
the
estimates of
the
first
He
e^il
unwUling
things of others.
is
1721.
V.
let
is
evil
pious
he who
He
college-goers^^.
that
hand
he
go, the reward of practice is in his hand
is pious
he that goes not and does
is
in his
not practise
he who
wicked.
is
20.
is
others give,
105
wicked,
is
21.
wise; a sponge;
credit
of liberality:
or he
who
jealous
anthrope,
neighbours'
is
is
a mis-
his
lest
should
possessions
and man.
The
contrary, is
be
and
twelve,
God
for the
on the
he who "counsels" hbetruly liberal,
who
8):
not
is
The
25
Thalmud
relative values of
character
second
is
is
(James
TroiTjnjs
i.
turn
is
Berakoth 6
in
KDm
different
NpnST
b,
where
N"lJX,
the lecture
is
intelligent
majority
is
it
"the
said
profit
of
more by
profit
to hear
it,
than
By nS3
is
meant a
of leather or hair,"
fine
sieve
fine
Shabbath
X.
4;
flom:.
Cf.
Shebi'ith
Menachoth
Kelim xxvii. 5. Such
viii.
2;
v.
9;
vi.
7,
sieves
to
was not
from
Moses
for
shewbread;
or,
Sinai
of siftiugs
many
re-sifted as
:"
eleven,
according to
number
E. Shime'on, the
was
See Menachoth 76 b. It
by the commentators upon
Mishnah, that the corn was
this
first partially crushed in a bean mill
the husk aud powder were then sifted
out: and what remained was ground
over again, and became soleth. The
word nop may denote meal in general
necessary.
is
" halakah
lest
said
but
(hi. 26);
it
is
here
(?)
identified
2),
refuse,
but
parison of
it
to a
man who
brings a
Thus out
Solomon there
Israel except Song
a cake.
of
of
is
all
the
wisdom
no soleth to
of Songs.
All the
PIRQE ABOTH.
]0(
up
out there
lets
all
a funnel, which
a strainer, which
here and
lets in
lets
back the dregs; a bolt-sieve, which lets out the pollard and
keeps back the flour.
22,
All love which depends on some thing", when the thing
and such as does not depend on anyceases, the love ceases
;
"What love
23.
love of
Amnon and
on anything
this
is
Thamar"^;
is
who
commentatoi"s
give
precedence
a teacher,
who
And
gives out a
him
still
as
more
noii\
n^lD,
the
It
is
inadequate, since
much
with as
might be used
it
propriety to symbolize
the
through the
falling
as
whilst the
sieve,
mind which
tliis
coarser sort
note
and feeds
others with refuse." Sec the commentaries barv nnxsn and pn'? p\
The
cloth, BOLT-SIEVE,
the
analogy of
and darkness
to
light,
the
five
preceding
which the
pious, and the wise, are mentioned
third in order. But in Aboth R. N.
groups of fours, in
all of
discriminating
comparison
is
traditionalist.
The
technical words
ments
The
flour.
bolting-
tain extent.
.seen sifts
bolter
which I have
three sorts.
bolter
first
fine
bolter,
they satisfy
but
idea,
into
becomes
after re-grinding
not
which
The com
descends an
in
the
incUne, passing
attached
the process
is
is
to
caught in a
the
machine:
bran,
must be
it
to
me very
difficult
dent of
It
may
disinterested,
all
extrinsic
and indepenconsiderations.
be remarked that
ha-dabar
Y. 2225.
1U7
end be established
in the
is
atic
xiii. 15).
for a
ingly;
^ Compare
Kabbah
shith
which
rv.
is
"To
between controversy
the
Name
disordering.
is for its
Heaven, means,
of
for
and not
to
shew
superiority, or
expression
cf.
et's
Sco^a
For the
IV.
16.
IV.
*"
controversies
man
and these
have been
to
him
ated, let
('Erubin 13
b).
"From
the time
when
halakah
forth, the
is
God
R. Bibi in
of
Shammai
of their followers,
fill
Talmud. Shammai is self-asserting, and Hillel j*ielding (p. 37), but the canon is accord" Said E. Abba, Said
ing to HilleL
Shemuel, Three years disputed Beth
Shammai and Beth Hillel these said,
The halakah is according to us, and
these said, The halakah is according
to us. Bath Qol went forth and said,
These and those are words of the
Living God, and the halakah is according to Beth Hillel, But if these
and those were words of the Living
God, how did Beth Hillel merit that
a large space in the
to
and
Direct mention of
and elsewhere.
The
is
man
irpo<i>r}Tov...
see
Sotah in.
" Beth
4).
Shammai
were created
first,
was created,
earth
for
is
it
said,
first,
vens, for
it is
together, for
iline
hand
it is
and
my right hand
PIRQE ABOTH,
108
27.
and the righteousness of the many was laid upon him^^, for it
is said, He executed the justice of the Lord and His judgments,
WITH
Jerobe'am''^ sinned,
it is said,
(1
Kings
28.
many
of the sins of
a disciple of
is
Abraham
pp. 45, 46
XII.)
and
that
cf.
Bereshith Rabbah,
say the
is to
hand
hand
(left)
at the
dWk
TTvevfxaTiKbv,
TO TrvevfiaTiKov.
aW
to
The
irpdrov to
oi)
ipvx^^ov,
lirena
of
texts
idealism,
Matter
and dualism.
some systems regarded as esand its creation, acsentially evil
evolutionism,
was
in
TAD
*i
is
left
hand, as
him who
attributed to the
is
taken to mean.
leads the
many to
righteousness, since
it
should
Ha-rabbim,
ol
iroWoi
(Eom.
v.
19),
Surenhusius, Vol.
^2
This saying,
Sotah 47 a
it is
in
SDn'^
N''Dnm
'ID
p. 1.
ii.
(cf.
the
^D,
73
form,
is
in
cited
Sanhedi-iu 107 b)
and
pN
to come....Jerobe'am, Achab,
What
is.
After ?
Said
is
^^
Moses
is
with Israel in
reckoned as cooperating
all their acts of righte-
the
contrasted
^'
Reshuth
to
"locus
with
ha-yachid,
ha-ralbim"
publicus."
is
is
els.
equivalent
See jMislinah
the seat of
msn,
to
is
""
2630.
V.
109
And what
difference
Cehiunom^^, for
it is
The
But
said,
may
fill
disciples of
disciples of Bile'am go
thou,
Abraham and
down to
O God, shalt bring them
between the
is
of
me
Eden,
'
for it is said,
to inherit substance''^
viii.
That
and I
21).
swift as
spirit,
the seat of
ambition, and of
what
Compare the
men
Aboth
16;
ii.
15.
The three
ii.
evil
Bile'am in "Midi-ash E.
Thanchuma"
and in Bemidbar
Eabbah xx. He had an evil eye, for
" And Balaam lifted up
it is said
his eyes, and he saw Israel, &c."
(Numb. xxiv. 2). He had a grasping
soul, for it is said: " If Balak would
give me his house full of sUver and
He had a
gold, &c." (xxii. 18).
haughty spirit, for, instead of confessing to the messengers of Balaq
that God had altogether forbidden him
to go, and to curse the people, he said
to them: "Get you into your land:
for the Lord refuseth to give me leave
" He said
to go icith you " (xxii. 13).
to me, It is not consistent with thy
honour to go with these, but with
(cited
by
Af),
their superiors
honour.
for
And Balak
princes, more,
he desired
sent
yet
my
again
"Four
have no portion
in the world to come... Bile 'am, and
Doeg, and Achithophel, and Gechazi "
*5
(Sauhedrin
"
idioTai
xi. 2).
How many
It is
written, Bloody
is
and
deceitful
he must
than
Well hast
Iv. 24),
is less
was
va-itten
on
Son
it.
of thirty
three
when
(Sanhedrin 106
and
the lame,
him
This estimate of
b).
son that
is
cause
he
occasioned
the
death
of
Substance
14).
ii.
310
i^''}
is
Eev.
by Gematria
This saying
is
quoted, in con-
instead of
x),
and
"ijnjJi'
38, citing
D1pl3
(iv.
"Eashi,"
Zebachim.
nnx
words, D''0:^3C'
T^^-
110
PIRQE ABOTH.
He
the
used
shamefaced^
to
to the
Thorah.
Ben Bag-hag
and
32.
said,
Turn
it,
The
sayiug,
D-JS (nVty,
'13
'svas
instance
first
man who
is said that a
shame
NLDin
has a sense of
will
D"'J3 n"C*13
stood not on
mount
20 a; Jalqut
i.
301
U)
D''iD
flTiy
see
26).
"In
it,
knowledge
and wisdom
poetry and word-play
conviction and counsel
dirge, entreaty, prayer, praise, and every kind
of supplication; and all this in a
divine way superior to all the prohx
correction
and
discretion
benedictions in
nothing of
the
dili-
gent student of Thorah, which contains, not only " all things necessary
to salvation," but "all the
the
wisdom
of
world."
thou
wilt
Thorah
of worldly advantage,
world and
its fulness
" There
ledge.
Palestine)
(p.
re-
Sinai." (Nedarim
Mekiltha, li'inn
Some commentators
(Leb Aboth).
mark
this.
Names
He, and
its
human
books
containing in
to say
its
depths
of the
secrets
n^n
:
'jp
III
n-liom this
rohoin this
one gotten
in
there is all:
is,
not,
is
tliis,
(Nedarim 41
The
a).
clause
peciiliar to
til
such expressions
This
13);
is
as,
the whole of
"She
is
which
is
illustrated
by
"^7131
^, may be
mSH
man
73
riT,
(Eecl.
xii.
iv.
13),
V.
Ben
83.
text
Ile-he"'^ said,
"totns in
(cf.
According
would
illis ")
3133.
"and be
^inn nil,
Note.
Crit.
pointed as
is
~|Dri1
In
pi'el,
Avhicli
many good
he taken as
therefore
on
in it";
mss.
and may
The saying
a frequenta-
The names
50
of
J3
32
and
found for N.
Aboth K. N.
ben He-he
to
Ben He-he,
of
n^13 in
Cf.
XII.
like
in Aramaic. Final
7, is
11.
tive.
'n 'n
reward.
ac-
seo
Ill
is
i.
14;
often
32.
In
being
addition of Jin^l^b),
mV3V
It
to Hillel in
'n Tl
is
immediately
when
Machazor Vitry,
the
(?)
denotes
the
a proselyte, one
a proverbial
of
Aboth.
was
but
doubtless
ADDENDA.
The Ages of Man.
He
used to say, At
Mishnali
mud
:
at thirteen^ the
Commandments:
strength
age
at
forty,
at ten years,
at tAventy', pursuits
discernment
at seventy, hoariness
at fifteen^, Thai-
at
fifty,
counsel
at thirty,
at
sixty,
at eighty*,
at a hundred, it is
and had ceased from the world.
pitude
i.
2,
dabbling in
filth: at
by
all: at
two or three he
is like
a swine,
is like
a hoese,
a wife, behold
he is shameless as a dog
in procuring the means of sustenance when he has grown old he is like an ape
if, at least, he is 'am ha-arer; but a son of Thorah, like David, is a king
though old (1 lungs i. 1).
he
is like
to him,
ADDENDA.
112
life of
man
into
De Mundi
Op. (Yol.
i.
respectively.
1
commandments;" and
ix. 14), is
life.
Wliy
on
Because
it
is
ycc^er.
itself,
make up
the "Thalmud."
But
it is
man
"'XD
should
13Dv
first
learn,
13D
to speculate:
a).
Af remarks
that
is
So
C rejecting the
inter-
his family.
of his ideal:
it is
which
is
(Ps. xc.
In the text we
may
'13
nJti'
D"'3"IOtJ'
and vigour,
n")12J3 DN1
man.
PEREQ
MEIR.
R.
branch of
my
(Sanhedrin
xi. 1
all
Isaiah
Ix.
21
He
1.
for its
for
it
said,
is
Thy
Eom.
world to come^,
planting,
;
iu the
righteous
xi. 26).
in the
Mishnah tongue
blessed
that
for it is said.
Counsel
is
viii.
14).
And
am
it
him
And
they
him the
under-
gives
secrets of
all things.
2.
Woe
1
is
contempt of Thorah,
for
15
who-
;
,
lU
PEREQ
MEIR.
R.
\vorthy\" for
so
is
And
it is said,
As a jewel
is
fair
it
writing was the writing of God, graven upon the tables (Ex.
for
Matthanah
to Nachaliel
xxi. 19).
He who
3.
learns from
his
companion one
or
section,
we
is
David king of
bound to do him honour
Achithophel
from
but two things only,
Israel, who learned not
that he called him his master, his guide, and his acquaintance.
for thus
Nazcf
serves as a "not(a)riqon"
of
another species of
Jalqut
where
example
of
occurs in
]1p''"lt3'l3
I.
:
modem
and by his
s.
v.
find with
3 Some
system of reckoning by
VEKSEs was employed by the Jews at
a very early period (Qiddushin 30 a)
but the present division of the Old
editor.
James i.
see Aboth iii. 8
25,
'Abodah Zarah 5 a
'Erubin 54 a
Bemidbar Rabbah xvi &c.
The exegetical device, ^IpD ?X,
"Read not" so but so, is often used
in the Talmud, when it is desired to
Compare Joh.
12
and
ii.
viii.
32
tural expression
The
by way
of fivrj/xoawov.
be taken as
words to which
it is
which
date
of
R.
Isaac
first
it
was
with
the
Cluristians"
on MS. Ko.
13).
i.
;:
3 G.
115
for
ment from the greater to the less, that as David king of Israel,
who learned not from Achithophel but two words only, called
him his master, his guide, and his acquaintance, he who learns
from his companion one section, or one canon, or one verse,
or one word, or even one letter, is so many times the more
?
And honour
The wise
shall inherit
bound
to
do him honour
for it
is
said.
is
And
good
is
it
is
said.
For
And
I give
you
my
by
long-suffering,
by a good
heart,
by
that rejoices
J
This
is
by
acceptance of chastisements;
b).
PEREQ
116
R.
MEIR.
he is loved, loves
God, loves mankind, loves righteousnesses, loves uprightness,
loves reproofs
and retires from honour, and puffs not up
his heart with his learning, and is not forward in decision;
bears the yoke with his associate, and inclines hira to the
scale of merit, and grounds him upon the truth, and grounds
him upon peace (i. 19) and settles his heart to his study
asks and answers, hears and adds thereto he that learns in
order to teach, and that learns in order to practise; that makes
his master wiser, and that considers what he has heard, and that
;
tells
a thing in the
name
it,
him
that said
a thing in the
it.
name
Esther told
ii.
of
tells
it
name
of
it
of
is
him
that
said,
And
Mordekai (Esth.
22).
7.
Great
is
life
to those
tise it in this
life
to thy navel,
saith,
happy
She
is
is
who
it
pracsaid.
is
(Pro v.
iv,
22);
and marrow
a tree of
life to
and
it
saith.
to thy bones
them that
It shall
be health
and it
upon her and
iii. 18)
and it
(Pro v.
lay hold
iii.
8)
710.
beauty of old
saith,
men
117
is
men
the
moon
the
Lord
shall
of
xvii.
G)
it
aad the
glory
saith,
Then
and
it
reign
shall
mount
in
Ziou,
(Is.
and
in
xxiv. 23).
place, I
me
pearls.
I said to him. If
thou shouldest
the
all
silver,
thou goest,
keep thee
it
''
tions:
"I
he
to
me," &c.
The same pecuHarity is
found in parts of the New Testament.
Cf. Joh. iv., xxi.,
Talmndic
^
xhe
style.
text of
(H,
reads,
Gen.
xiv. 19 is
was a pOp.
Four
Cf.
pos-
note
K.
118
PEREQ
R.
MEIR.
earth
unto
and
my
is
footstool
me ? and where
it saith,
hast thou
wliere
the
is
the house
is
place
how manifold
Lord,
made them
all
my
of
in
civ 24)
over,
Lord,
till
and
in the earth,
in,
place,
and
it
over,
thou
And
most
19);
pass
hast
is all
because
it
my
is
delio-ht
written.
the sanctuary,
whom
to the excellent, in
which
To the
saith,
(Ps. xvi. 3)
The
of thy possessions
is full
1)
wisdom
build
(Is. Ixvi.
the earth
ye
that
rest
and
it saith,
And he
is
He, created
for
my
xliii. 7)
it
is
said,
is
called
This saying
is
EXCURSUS
Thorah.
Qabbalah.
The Decalogue.
(See
i.
1, p. 25).
It is very
1.
and Qabbalah.
"
I.
(Shabbath 31a).
Some
oral
Thorah HD byaC'
for
made
what
is
some
of
min"
mouth
more precious (T. J. Peah ii. 6. Cf. T. J. Megillah iv. 1 T. B. Gittin 60 b).
In T. J. Berakoth i. 7 it is said in the course of a discussion, in the name
of R. Jochanan " Words of Soferim are akin to words of Thorah and more
beloved than words of Thorah, for (Cant i. 2), Thy love is better than wi2\E
(sc. of the Thorah)":
;
inn "nro
It is
'a
-n-iin
n^no inr
D^n'-nni
min
nan'?
nnsio
light
precepts, the words of the Soferim are all of the latter class,
who
^-^ii
onn
and iceighty
Dmon.
Ho
him"
"whoso breaketh an
In 'Abodah Zarah ii. 5 it is
(Eccl. x. 8).
i.
is
T'"!}n
is
EXCURSUS
120
I.
dialectic character.
i.
The word Qabbalah means 8La8oxl^, and denotes tradition {naparegarded from the point of view of reception. It is applied not only
to what is generally understood by tradition, but even to the Prophetic
Scriptures and the Hagiographa^, as below:
2.
Boa-is),
MisnxAH
(i)
and
in
Tha'anith
Qabbalah he
T. J.
(ii)
Kilaim
saith.
ix. 1
ii. 1
(Joel
Niddah
iii.
DmD'a
nn-hv
rhv
Rosh ha-Shanah
7 a (Zech.
nbp nmo
lino^ ah
Drn ):iDb
-iD^j
n^i
nbpn
k'-i^q
(iv)
Kin rhipi)
T. J.
(iii)
13):
ii.
.123-^'
t^'iiso
Nin vbv)
7)
i.
irm
mino
nti'o
"itj'y
nr
im w^m
iok
Said Rabina, This matter we have learned not from the Thorah of
Moshch our lord from words of Qabbalah we have learned it, " Upon the
four and twentieth day of the eleventh month, which is the month Sebat..."
:
Niddah 25 a (Job
(v)
.'13
x. 10)
(vi)
Dinn
(vii)
Mekiltha,
i^yrD
1'"'
bw
NnDQl
hi
Sifra,
pns yia
n^3p3 pHN n>
133M
myn
ii.
tj-iiQ?3
nn^byi
yhn nbipi
K'-iiao
nnhvi
5):
bi^-)^^
nbpn
\:
2)
^JTN3 nsnpi
ii.
hv B'1120 3in3n pi
.'13 hii-\^''2
J
'?3
12):
'DO (Jer.
rh^>)-\'>
(viii)
iv.
and Zunz,
n^3
n'h^ tinn
jinNEi'
pjoi
nv n^^b^ pns na
Di^K'ni D^"'nn
KXCUKSCS
And whence (appears
said, " And when ail
it)
mourned
Aaron
for
pursued peace
>ni"-inni
iiv^r]
K^mn
bEi*
''in
NOtJ'
n^npn
nnn
mvo
n'jnyn inis
mniJ nT'ayi
i^in
ndh
nmn
-imyni
(P?.
nns
xx.
2i>,
Is. v. 18):
"iinon
nt^'n n'pnpn
'cd^'o vhv
iids
nrn
xn
i^'tdi n^y^"-
"?:;'
n^ns*
T'^^j;'?
-nstDn
in'?''nn
mnnysi
n'?:yn
nivo miiJ
pjid'?::'
nmn m^ny
m^*o nnij? hv
m-n2t^
thereupon
in
"
Qabbalah,
Thou
'?n*
jNn>
n'^'py
fiid"?
pnx
n^oe"-
nivny
It is expressly said
n'l^i
nDiyxi in'-niK
'i
m-n: nivt^
ni^*D
20
1.
nmn ^nxn
inn
y:>ii
t^in"?
m^ny
nHiX
"?
|nn
'nmn
"itio
Di"!
notr'? nns*
(Numb.
the
is
n'px an
rr'C'j?
Dipon ^3-n
thus
in Israel.
Sifre on
fix)
Because
"My
Qabbalah:
And
35)...
p.
it is
see
121
I.
and speakest
sittest
were with a
cartrojie."
IV. 5, q. V.)
Sifre
(x)
plan
h:^^
sin
K'S3
mo'? sn
nn
idix
(Eccl. x. S)
C'n: lanc"*
'ni''
t^"i
iij inisi
r'?y D'-sn
'13
r\i:h^>
^2
"pet
cm:;
nsu Dun
nyne*
it
in
Qabbalah, or
tradition,
Isaiah, Jeremiah,
called
Thorah (iv),
or Scripture
(viii),
quoted
find
may be assumed
we
This
mode
of speaking
may
tlie
See Lelow
?>, iii.
16
/).
EXCTRSrS
122
I.
dition."
(iranted tliat tlioy accepted all the canonical liooks, what weight
would they have allowed, wiuni their distinctive tenets were at stake, to an
argument from a I'rophet which appeared to contradict the Thorah, or
Pentateuch, to which a marked preeminence was and is assigned by Jews
in general?
Cf. Excursus 111.
On
3.
Ten Commandments,"
The Decalogue
from
At
Sinai.
is
referred to
other two,
Words),
""^JX
zee
Then
Isaiah (xxxiii.
1.5)
Ps. xv. 2
5,
three.
rest
in
the
n-'H''
New
ii.
4,
inJir3X2
The
in Ilab.
p''''\)i\
And
i.
17;
Gal.
iii.
11;
some
x.
38),
that
Heb
some
follow^ng are
and he prefers to
which assumes great prominence
It is evident
how much
(i)
^^a"?
T. J.
Megillah
iv.
I'r^hni:*
n)o i^-dxi
mjxi iio^ni
nre'n
.''rDa m'j:h
Scripture, Mishnah,
'ow
xipo
-133
the diligent scholar was destined to point out before his master, were
already spoken to Closes fi-om Sinai.
;
.
KXcuiisL's
1:^:}
I.
T. B. Megillah litb:
(ii)
ins"inL*'
iKh^
-ini
^irh ]n'nv
(iii)
D3y
'n
nan
nnsiont:' noi
ii^'H
nnann
"psa nn^bv^
nmn
Dnsio ^npni
aTinn ^xn
Berakoth 5 a
IT
d'?i2"l:'
psn nini"? ns
nmn -nnann
i'?
-xnpo nr
ni^*nni
n^'^D
-xnjDjn nr
nmmn'?
n^ns^i
^''nan
mm"?
nnc-y "ha
-D-ainai
D''t<'a3
\srD
-Dnimn"?
I'ps
'nana
TDO
What means
stone
(e)
{b) tlie
Thorah
\c)
ths
I will
commandment
which
{d)
have written
The expressions
signify,
the Decalogue;
(b)
(iv)
Shemoth Kabbah
"And God
xxviii.
"
Mount Sinai, for thus Closes said to Israel (Deut. xxix. 14', IJ^S T^'J^ n^^1
DVn i:^y na not DV.n noiy IJOy, but simply, Dr.n IJay. These are
the souls (of those) about to be created, who bad no substance, and of
whom
all
the prophets only, but also the sages that were to arise in successive
them received
voices,
into
seventy tongues.
(v)
Jalqut
(man)... It
is
I.
285
(cf.
a single nian."
The
to have
very
oral
much
is lost.
EXCURSUS
(See
1.
of the
From statements
Men
II.
i.
25.)
1, p.
Great Synagogue.
of the
in
would
it
mJitn
"piv'^
^3xn
'12
In Aboth R. N.
i.
-iq
kl*'S''D
hy^-p"^
iHTj'
nx ymrn
"':^dd
(?)
nco*?
D\x'n3n
r\-hr\
is
i'?n''pK'
(as
we may conclude
its
in
accordance with a
time after the return from the Captivity, and included "alle die bis
in
Judda standen^^
later generations
zum
The number
in T. J. Megillah
Neh,
X. 10,
said to include
&c.
(i.
i.
or to include Ezra.
In T.
J.
Berakoth
upwards of 80 prophets.
number 120
may be
ii.
name
before
yiti'"'!
in
4 the
number 120
is
as fictitious,
whether
it
be assumed
to
be
EXCURSUS
]25
II.
number of the Great Synagogue at any one epoch, or tlic sum total of
numbers in successive periods. In the pages following he attempts to
Its name is not mentioned by Jo.sepiius or
identify it with the Synhcdrin.
Philo; but some have imagined a reference to it in 1 Mace. vii. 12; xiv. 28.
Little, however, is known about the Mex of the Great Synagogue, except
that the Mishnah regards them as having received the Tradition from the
Prophets, and preserved it down to the age of Simon Justus. The passage
the
its
of
A both
Megillah
'J
bv laiN*
piDD2
piD22
^''7]
*ioiy
rhMin nDJ3
sin
DHDn
jn^j'^ki'i
yinbv
together with
is cited,
nbiyn
\n'C'b'C')
n'-c'D iT-n
77i(?
19, in T. J.
nnm
'3
bu "idis hn'b^:
nnnn
worZ; 0/ <Ae
nrtrr'p
And when
GREATNESS to
the
men
bv noiy D'piyn
I'w^'c^
'13
p"i P^^n
Di'^L^n
in^j'^ci
:
2.
i.
iii.
Di'?:^'
byi
t:s::'oi
nn^n
pn
nosn ^yi
nox nnx
Great Syxagogue.
n'pn^n
nnnn yn^a
of the Great
)it2V'iy
irsi
T. J.
Berakoth
vii.
Megillah ni.
8.
CROWX
refer to
The Name,
nJii'l''?
riTOy
IT'TPinEJ*,"
according to Beth
('Edioth
V. 3).
EXCURSUS
Zadok.
Antigonus.
III.
(See
Sadducee.
i.
3,
p.
27.)
A both
I'^c^'OK-nn
bnp'?
rDj)
Di2:*D3S
DnnyD vnn '?x i^rir] p'T:in pjj?:c'o hip 131d C'-t? D"i33''d:x
i6^ 3-in ns r^'^'j-on iDnnys rn t^'px did biph 6i} mn nx
sa'? T'ny'? i?iS3 ddidk' nsT-:^
irnnx
101^
it:'-iDi
"iij^v
pn^' DK'
1S-I
"ID
HD
'noiN*
nrr-n
vh vd^
D'piyn
|?3:y
'pd
anr
py:o
vn
pnnx
'"pdi
ipnpni
D^nrrn n-'nn
x"?
-i^Din^m
ppii^'
!?y
njoNi
n3
rpi"!^'
fpD
''pDa
nVi'iD
concn
noy
ti^-i
nnnno'pn'?
'.T'I
diq
Dn'-obni
^ntr
n'-ntj'
Din^''a
n^
bv rDin'*'!
say,
pense ; but be as shxves that serve the Rab not on the terms of receiving
recompense and let the fear of Heaven be upon you ; that your reward
may be doubled for the time to come.
Antigonus of Soko had two discijiles, who repeated his words and they
;
repeated them to
(their) disciples,
For a transcript
of the above
debted to Dr Neiibauer.
.'12
an'by nrj
pyi
7^nr\
Kbu*
b3...ri:'r3ri'K:
is
vm
am in-
as follows
EXcuRsi's
all
th('ir
days
mind, &c.]
tJicir
127
rir.
The
said,
Pliarisces
have a tradition that they must worry themselves in this world; and ia
the world to
come
Tiie above,
tlsere is
which
is
seems
t<i
represent Sad-
If,
named
after
them
2.
named
after the
(^adoq
of other Levites
went
them
"And
Kings i. 39),
and he ex-
(1
''22,
i^oxriv, to
the exclusion
when
which went astray away from rae after their idols; they
shall even bear their iniquity. .they shall not come near unto me, to do the
ofBce of a priest unto me... But I will make them keepers of the charge of
Israel
astray,
all the service thereof, and for all that shall be done therein.
But THE PKiESTS the Levites, the Soxs op Zadok'', that kept the charge of
my sanctuary when the children of Israel went astray from me, they shall
come near to me to minister unto me, and they shall stand before me to
offer unto me the fat and the blood, saith the Lord God " (Ezek. xliv.
10
Passing on to the Xew Testament, we find the Sadducees men15).
in St John's
all,
and Pharisees (vii. 32, 45 ; xi. 47, 57 xviii. 3) occurs instead of Pharisees
and Sadducees (Matt. iii. 7 xvi. 1 12 Acts xxiii. 7); and the identification
of the Sadducees with the sacerdotal party seems to be completed by
Acts V. 17, ava<rTa.s 8e 6 dp^iepevs kol travres ol (tvv avrw, tJ ovaa aipetris Ta>v
2a88ovKaicov, K.r.X. We see then that Cadoq was a venerable priestly
name of the age of Solomon that the sons of (^adoq were singled out as the
priestly line from the captivity and thenceforward; and that the Cadoqites
v,ere still the priestly party in Apostolic times.
Hence it may be granted
;
Cf. 2
Chron. xxxi.
9, 10:
128
EXCURSUS
III.
in the
The
4.
The Sadducees said, fifj elvai avafrraaiv (Matt. xxii. 23), and our Lord
answers by an indirect argument from the Pentateuch i, instead of bringing
proofs of a more obvious and direct kind from other parts of Holy ScripHence it has been inferred that they accepted the Pentateuch only,
ture.
and rejected the Nebiim and Kethubira. On the other side it is asserted
that they accejited the three
that this inference is wholly inaccurate
:
nvini nivo
:'iD
|'?13K'
nm
onsD
nmriD^ D^x^nJ
n^'onS
p^s DipD
pit^
b^m
"And
woi'ds of
of the Prophet.
contra; ieties,
compare
Makkoth 24 a
nyms
isn
^y iran nc^D
'?kijj''
2
'
For
See
itj
ni"lT3
xxviii.
Hor.
:;
= "7!33^
65),
Hi^br.
commentary on Aboth
tk
in safety...
the
-\i "-dv
made them
on Matt.
in the
xxii. 32;
MS. Af
(Rom.
A
iii.
Joh.
iv. 25.
omits ina.
31).
EXCURSUS
no rest
And
(xxvii. 13),
it
shall
12'.)
III.
And
come
5),
20),
ye shall perish
sinneth,
among
it
shall die.
the heathen
Isaiah
trumpet
be blown..."
shall
would follow that a p.n-ty answering more or less closely to the deSadducees must have existed, under some name or other,
before the times of Antigonus, if we might assume that there was a time at
which the Pentateuch was the whole Bible, and the other books had not
as yet been fully recognised as canonical; but their comparative depreciation of the other books would have a tendency to diminish in course of
" The
time, when these had once been generally received into the Canon.
Sadducees," writes Josephus (Ant. xiir. 10. 6), "are able to persuade
none but the rich, and have not the populace obsequious to them." Their
influence was on the wane, and it received a fatal blow in the destruction
of Jerusalem. Their power as a sacerdotal oligarchy then vanished, and
in after times the name Sadducee was freely used p. 54) as a synonym for
a heretic, regarded as one who receded from an acknowledged standard of
It
scription of the
orthodoxy.
5.
a.
literature;
but
it
has been
'
lia-Gadol's
Scribfe tedituis
est^,
^Editui, vulgo
hominum
innitendum
h.
MisHXAH, Sotah
IX.
^!J;^^^ 'v
Index exjnirgatorius
.^08).
Ben
reads
K^Tr:'-?,-),
EXCURSUS
The Decalogue,
Qeriyath Shema'.
1.
The
"Hear, O
Shema
or
Audi,
DeuterOxVOMY
is
and
Israel, &c.";
following passages
IV.
is
commences:
vi.
49
Hear,
Israel
the
all tliiue
heart,
Deuteroxomy
xi.
13
21
And it shall come to pass, if ye shall hearken diligently unto my commandments which I command you this day, to love the Lord your God,
and to serve him with all your heart and with all your soul, That I will
give 1/m the rain of your land in his due season, the
latter rain, that thou
And
oil.
I will
mayest gather
in thy corn,
fields for
and be full. Take heed to yourselves, that your heart be not deceived,
and ye turn aside, and serve other gods, and worship them; And then the
Lord's wrath be kindled against you, and he shut up the heaven, that there
be no rain, and that the land yit Id not her fruit and lest ye perish quickly
from off the good land which the Lord giveth you. Therefore shall ye lay
up these my words in your heart and in your soul, and bind them for a sign
upon your hand, that they may be as frontlets between your eyes. And ye
shall teach them your children, speaking of them when thou sittest in thine
house, and when thou walkest by the way, when thou liest down, and when
thou risest up. And thou shalt write them upon the door-posts of thine
house, and upon thy gates: That your days maybe multiplied, and the days
;
fathers to
seen
9.
EXCUllSUS
Numbers
xv. 37
131
IV.
41
And
the Lord spiiko unto Moses, saying, Speak unto the children of
and bid tlieiu that they make them fringes in the borders of their
garments throughout their generations, and that they put upon the fringe
of the borders a ribband of blue And it shall be unto you for a fringe,
that ye may look \ipon it, and remember all the comuiaudments of the
Lord, and do them and that ye seek not after your own heart and your
own eyes, after which ye use to go a whoring That ye may remember, and
do all my commandments, and be holy unto your God. I am the Lord
your God, which bronght you out of the land of Egypt, to be your God I
am the Lord your God.
Israel,
But the
called,
or
from
"IDX"'1.
first of the
its
above passages
is
commencement, V'OV DN
The order
of the three
Why
is
n\'l1
and the
the second
third, n>*^V
yoc come
does
before
ii.
2, "
ync DX
is
nCID
Said
n''n"i
why but that one may receive upox him the yoke of the ki]S'gdom op
HEAVEN^ first, and after that receive upon him the yoke of the command-
And '13 n^ni before "lOSM ? because the former is employed day and
and the latter only in the daytime."
The opening words of the Audi are written with two litcrw majiis-
ments?
night,
cukv,
,
which have been accounted for in various ways''. But it was obviously
intended that the syllables which they conclude should be pronounced
with the utmost clearness and emphasis and that the cojiyist should be
guarded against all possibility of error, especially as regards the Daleth,
since, as it is said at the beginning of Midrash Thanchunui, " If thou make
Daleth into Resh thou destroyest the whole world, for it is said (Ex. xxxiv.
;
14),
*inx
'ps'?
mnn't^Tl xV O,
For thou
The above
is
common
this
expression
52) for
(p.
(cf.
p.
which
he has cleansed himself, lay his TefilUn, and recite the Audi, and pray. This
is the " complete kingdom of Heaven, nn^bw D-ou' niabo" (Berakoth 15 a).
2 For other meanings which have been assigned to the two large letters in the
Shema', see Ba'al ha-Tukim in loc, and Buxt. Tiberias, Pt. 1, Chap. xiv. The
two together make the word
'ed, witness,
He
and indieate
that,
if
them
Taken separately they indicate that mn' is the
One God in the i quarters of the earth, and over its J? = 70) nations, aU of
whom are summoned to hear (Is. xxxiv. 1): that Israel has y names: the
God's witnesses
(Mic.
i.
2; Mai.
(Is. xliii.
iii.
5,
10
xliv. 8),
&c.).
Thorah
if
EXCURSUS
182
guishirig clearly
mem
mno
in
CmaXI,
2.
In St Mark's Gospel
constitute the
IV.
(xii.
in the Shema'.
29) the
T. J. Berakoth i. 8.
opening words of the Audi are said to
Trpcirr]
loc. cit.,
the several
'
(i)
/,
YnvH,
am
tluj
Hear,
God.
(Deut.
O Israel, Ynvn
is
our God
vi. 4).
Yhvh
One
is
(Deut.
vi. 4).
(jods hut
Remember
(iv)
to kerjJ
it
the Sahhath
day
holy.
And
God
Yuvn
flty
vDeut.
vi. 5)
King will
and lie.
That ye may remeniber, &^c. (Num.
XV. 40)
R. says, This
is
the Sabbath
all
ix.
14),
the
it
is
And madest
that
it
counterpoises
all
the precepts
of the Thorah.
(v)
Honour
thy father
and thy
mAher.
plied,
(Deut.
(vi)
Thou
shall do no
murder.
xi. 21).
And lest
xi. 17):
Cvii)
Thou
adultery.
shall
not
commit
And
own
heart
your
My
me
and
ways the
Holy One, blessed is He, saith. If
thou hast given me thy heart and
thine eye, I know that thou art Mi>e.
son, give
thine heart,
observe
my
EXCLKSL'S
Thou
(viii)
shall
wA
133
IV.
That thou
corn (Deut,
steal.
gather in thy
inarjest
U); thy
xi.
corn,
and
Thou
(ix)
/, Yiivii,
xv.
nnX
am
And
41).
n'rhii
it
written, miT-l
is
(Jer.
x.
That he
lO).
What
R. Abuhu
a living- God, and
is
unto
Thou
(x)
thy
not covet
shalt
neighbour's house.
tli,ee
as
if
it
20):
neighbour" s house."
3.
It
may
Decalogue
T. J.
Beeakoth
|mx pip px no
I.
''jni
or hzi
nnmn
nx-y jmp
in'"j
nin ;nn
" Of right they should read the Ten "Words every day.
And on account of what do they not read them? on account of the cavilling of the
heretics, so that they might not say, These only were given to Moses on
fc>iuai."
T. B.
mnyi
p
x^x
Berakoth
n^iTM
nt:x
niip"? rj'p:i
vc'\>2 \'h'\2i2
12 a:
'\'\y)3':^\>'t:h
'?::
I'-ron
'jdd
nnp!?
"laD -iD^Dx
"And they read the Ten Words, and Shema*, &c. Said Rab Jehudah,
Said Shemucl, In the provinces also they sought to read them, only that
EXCURSUS
134
IV.
4.
so-called
Tex Commaxdmexts.
The
Word is identified with, lam the Lord thy God which brought thee out
of the land of Egypt (which cannot of course be properly called a Commandment), and the second Word is made. ..to include what is divided in
our Prayer Book into the First and Second Commandments. The sub-
ject-matter
itself
There
arrangement].
word 'Commandment,'
the original,
ivTokri.
"lin,
The
is
is
seen to be of
force
Dnnx
little
Me
when
it is
noticed that
Commandment,
term which
is
or
not specially*
(tlaou shalt
&c.)
the Decalogue
"Ye
Israel,
shall not
of gold."
returned unto the Lord and said, Oh, this people have sinned a great
adduced
(see Suicer,
Thesaurus
s.
by
his
known
"Thou
23, 31).
of Philo's
v. AeKciXoyos) in
sin,
shalt
testimony
and
make
which
must be allowed to
be somewhat reduced
But amongst the 613 Commandments, the First, Second, &c. "Words"
See Excm-sus i. 3. The root my is also used in the Bible
in relation to the Ten Words, but not directly o/them.
2
are reckoned.
EXCURSUS
applied to
tlic
DFr.\T,oorE.
P1'-)2"]|1
D^m"
Hebrew
Berakoth
See above,
T. J.
(2)
p3i
p NK'^XT nao"?!
tod"?
8.
i.
may be
division
(1)
hv Ppnnoi
In favour of the
n^'^D'
sx. 2,
p "ii:n
cited:
nao'? iijn
{''"'nin'?:;*^ 'ni
vrnnoi iTni
'IT'
xnny
it
x'-cc'
fi^n j'-th^
ninyr' rr-n
"
all.
2.
them
3.
idd
Ten Com-
of " Tlic
or n"lLJ^>7
not merely as a separate one of the
Ten Words,
n^^soK'
Tlie
The ten
135
TV.
pp-in^
pirn
'ni
q^'D)
ma
5<a'"'p
'm'?
i^sn
'X-i^'m xy-ix
'20 -13
pnix xn^x i?
Holy One, blessed be his Xame, was like sparks, and lightnings, and flames
of fire; a torch of fire was on its right hand, and a torch of flame on its left
and hovered iu the air of the heavens, and returned and was
encampments of Israel; and returned and graved itself upon
the tables of the covenant which were given into the hands of Moses; and
turned itself upon them from side to side, and cried out thus, and said,
My people, sons of Israel, I am your G :d, who freed you, and brought you
hand
flew
it
out freed from the land of the Egyptians, from the bondage-house of slaves."
when
it
had gone
forth. ..cried
and
said,
My
people, house of Israel, there shall not be to thee another God, beside Me."
(3)
Jalqut Shime'oni
''And whence
is it
i.
2.
that Aleph
is
called
One? because
it is
said (Deut.
(is
at the)
head of
all
the letters,
::'X1 ?l'?X1
nn3nn
^3
":
(4)
*
is
^^JJ^
!?3
v. 11).
liJ'Xn
nvnixn
letter
He Lord of
:
the work!.
Thou hast
set
me
at
EXCURSUS
13G
IV.
head of the letters, and didst not create the world by me, but by Beth,
God created the heaven and the earth. The Holy
One, blessed is He, said to it, My world and its fulness were not created
but by the merit of Thorah (Prov. iii. 19). To-moiTOw I shall be revealed,
and shall give the Thorah to Israel, and I will set thee at the bcgiuniug of
all the nil^n, and will open with thee first."
tlie
(5)
Mekiltha, 'n
t^inn
'D-D;
Jalqut
i.
2D9.
How were the Tex "Words given? five on this Table, and five on that.
(i) There was written, /, Thvh, am thy God; and opposite to it, Thou shalt
do no murder. The Scripture shews that, whosoever sheds blood, the
Scripture imputes to him as if he diminished the likeness of the King.
A parable of a king of flesh and blood, who entered into a province, and
they set up effigies, and made images, and sunk dies to him. After a time,
they overturned his effigies, shattered his images, and effaced his dies,
and they diminished the likeness of the king. So, whosoever sheds
blood, the Scrii^ture imputes to him as if he diminished the likeness of
the King, for it is said (Gen. ix. 6), Whoso sheddeth man's blood, &c.
(ii) It was written. Thou shalt have no other, &c.; and it was written
opposite to it, Tho^i shalt not commit adultery. The Scripture shews that,
whosoever practises strange worship, the Scripture imputes to him as if he
committed adultei'v from God, for it is said (Ezek. xvi. 32), As a wife that
committcth adultery, which taketh strangers instead of her husband. And
it is written (Hos. iii. 1), Then said the Lord unto me. Go yet, love a
woman beloved of her friend, and an adulteress, &c. (iii) It was written.
Thou sfiall not take ths Name of the Lord thy God in vain ; and opposite
to it was written. Thou shalt not steal. It shews that whosoever steals
"
'
will at last
'
come
iv. 2),
By
ting adultery,
vii. 9),
And
Will ye
it
is
steal,
written
was
The
falsely
written.
it
Remember
witness.
are
my
and
(v) It is
it is
written,
written.
Thou
Honour
thy father
The
Scripture shews that whosoever 'covets,' at last begets a son that curses his
,
who
is
Therefore
were the Tex Words given, five on this Table, and five on that. So says
R, Chanina ben Gamliel. And the wise say. Ten on this Table, and ten on
that Table, for it is said (Deut. v. 22j, These words the Lord .spake, &c.
and he wrote them in two Tallies of stone."
EXCURSUS
The above examples
sion of tlie Decalogue
is
will sufBcc to
137
IV.
shew that
tl
o present
Hebrew
divi-
It was, perhaps,
The
latter is preferred by
distinctly forbids
many
image-worship
but
"
it
is
as living entities,
as in
is
to
more
IS
EXCURSUS
The Lord's Prayer.
V.
(See v. 30,
p.
105.)
xi. 2
4)
may be
ilhistrated
Books.
" R. Ele'azar ben 'Azariah expounded. That ye may be clean from all
your sins before t/ie Lord (Lev. xvi. 30) transgressions between a man
and n.v-MAQOM the day of expiation expiates: transgi-e-ssions between a man
and his fellow the day of expiation expiates not, until he reconcile his
Said R. 'Aqiba, Happy are ye, Israel; before whom do ye purify
fellow.
yourselves? Who purifies you] your Father which is in Heaven"
;
(Joma
"
VIII. 9).
On whom have we
(Sotah
to lean
in
is
Heaven "
IX. 15).
benediction at
eXOtrco
r]
ing of the
all "
^aaiXeia
Name,
"
is
(Berakoth 40
(tov.]
The Coming
shall there
is
no
some passages
ment, thus
niiT)
of the kingdom,
And
(i.e.
b).
Name^ one"
all
(Zech. xiv.
9).
So too are the petitions, yev-qdriTw k.t.X., and dXXa pCaai k.t.X.
Or, " Yhvh shall be one ( = sole)."
EXCUBSUS
139
V.
of
(Berakoth 29
'
b).
On
the correspondence between the heavenly and the earthly, see p. 24.
" May it be thy will, O Lord,
Cf. Matt. xvi. 19; xviii. 10, IS; Luke xv. 10.
our God^ to make peace iu the family above, and in the family below ''
(Berakoth 16
Tov aprov
b 17 a).
tov iniovcnov bot
rj/iwi/
to Uarep i^p.av 6 ev
to'is
i]fi1v
aj^fifpov-.]
bread from heavex for you ; and the people shall go out and gather,
)DV2 DV "131, TO Trjs rifiipas fls Vp-epav, A CERTAIN RATE EVhRY DAY." The
rain
Nehem.
ix.
15; Sap.
20
spring
The expression,
Jer.
I.
lii.
34; Dan.
i.
101*2
5 is
Frotn heaven
The Lord
it is
said (Deut.
shall
and
it is
And
'
witten
(ver. 14)
bon
naa'J' "pyni.
and gather
(Luke
xi, 3).
not
;
:
EXCURSUS
140
V.
out to tho enclosures and gather, but they were to go out to the
tprjuoi
and
gather,
man
is
will
Thorah
e.vce2)t to
manna.
How? Can a man sit and search, and not know whence he is to eat
and to drink, and whence to be clad and covered (Matt. vi. 31)? The
Thorah was not given to search into, excej^t to the eaters of the manna
and second to them are (the priests,) the eaters of the Therumah."
On
the
meaning of iniova-iosi
tion
DE
DiETT, according to
hoc
est,
qui pani
jam absunipto
According to
(1)
i.e.
imovcnos
bread which
is
is
>
P>CLkkA, Kton?
successive or 'continual.'
rjfxlv
It is
vi.
34)
^ The maiiua was gathered in the morning to suj^ply the needs of the oncoming day. It was given "with a bright countenance," in the light, because
it was prayed for rightly; whereas the quails were given "with a dark counte-
nance," in the darkness, because they were not prayed for rightly.
tha,
xvi. 8, 21.
See Mekil-
EXCURSUS
141
V.
"Let thy lovingkindncss and thy truth, *3nV"' T'On, continually* preserve
(Ps. xl. 12); and (2) to pray, at the same time, that in each day so
much only may be given as is needed for that day. Compare: "And he did
And his alloweat bread continually before him all the days of his life.
ance was a coxTiNrAL allowance given him of the king, a daily rate for
EVERV DAY, ALL THE DAYS OF iiis LIFE " (2 Kings XXV. 29, 30; Jcr. lii. 34). It
is not unusual for T'On to stand in connexion with a complementary ex-
me"
Numb, xxviii. 3
(Matt.
k.t.X.
11;
vi.
represent
Is.
lii.
Luke
xi.
3)
and
"131.
perhaps
^<nnn x^nS
,^5^D1^
or
,ijbvi Ti2r\
either of
is
rise to a
urh
double rendering.
The
^fie'is
"As
principle,
"May
it
"May
it
may
be Thy
will...
Kcii jiff
fl(TVfyK^s
New Testament
spiritual, trials.
that hatred of us
man come
i]fj.as
t? Treipaafiov.l
to denote
The words,
an additional
Morning Prayer
(cf.
The Jews'
for
Never should a man bring himself into the hands of tempbehold David, King of Israel, brought himself into the hands
Cf.
Kai
ai'
Stjctjjs
eVt
ttjs yijs,
of examples.
allusion to the
b.
decad"
?<TTai
two worlds.
EXCURSUS
142
V.
of temptation,
(dXXa pva-ai
is
ijfias
ano tov
Compare 2
Thess.
iii.
3;
is 6 novr^pos (1
Tim.
But
novTjpov).^
iv.
xxvi. 2\
Examine me,
deliver US
Joh.
18, pvcrerai
p.e
from
v. 18, &c.),
alai/as
rav
al<ivu>v.
The word
J?"),
the eril.
It
or to novijpov.
anb
6 Kvpios
Lord,
jJ
iravTos epyov
bo^a
els
tovs
dfj.']f.
in tlie
Old Testament,
is
allusion
is
"The
angel
to the
Compare the
'
wicked
Oiie"^' alone.
3.
1.
"
May
be thy mil,
Lord, our God, and the God of our fathers, to
deliver us from the shameless, and from shamelessness from evil man,
and from evil hap, from evil yecer, from evil companion, from evil neighbour, and from Satan the destroyer
from hard judgment, and from a
liard advei'sary,' whether he be a son of the covenant, or not a son of the
it
'
covenant" (Berakoth 16
b).
2.
"It
is
do Thy
revealed and
will.
servitude to
hand" (Berakoth
17a).
And
into the
To
TTovripcv
ai'ticle)
viii.
11,
12, &c.
'Mr;
dvTiaTrjvat
ry
irovrjpi^
(Matt. v. 39).
hands
evil ye<,'tr
sin,
have dominion over us, and remove us from evil man, &c."
::
EXCURSUS
"
And remove
us from
all
Thou
that
143
V.
hatest
all
2).
Berakoth 1Gb:
Bebakoth
Kn nDxn
xd'-n
M^3 D^n'piyn
n'?B'
17 a
|m
nnb
ij''J''J?
nnx
^3n
-i:i^i-i
i^^'H'*
bxi
'''?^'OT
^n ni^vh
122'p
inn m^D^bx
i^b'ji
''211
n"?
q^^;^ I^S^^fH^
mt'Dud
''pvn
hi^)
x^ijnn 21
^"y HVd'?^
3.
Berakoth 60 b
n^S
isS^
Dv Sdii Dvn
^:ijni
n^b xS
^jx^inn
^^pnni
4.
T. J.
Berakoth
iv.
^Di^ X2X 11
N^^n
*3-i
EXCURSUS
144
Such passages serve
may
we have
V.
it
is
to consider first, of
be itself a translation.
The
what tov
original
Passing
diffi-
simply.
\t2
Although
Ij'p'^'ni,
this
it is
is
own
evil nature,
'
the imagi-
(p. 78),
machination.
From such
it
"IV* is
co-extensive
with
evil
in general,
'
petition,
EXCURSUS
The following words
145
V.
of St
Corinth,
i.
60,
pp. 106, 107, ed. Bryenuius, Constant. 1875) serve as a very ancient paraphrase of the petitions, acpes ^fjuv, k.t.\. dirb rov novrjpov.
...acfxs
Vl^lv
Tcis
dvofiias
rjixtav
naaav
7rX?7/i/ifXi'as.
Mi) Xoyiar]
Kadapels
rbv Ka6api(Tp.6v
rip.as
fip.av iv oa-ioTTjTi.
(Tov Ka\
e<pi'
T]p.as fls
dno
KapSias nopfViO'dai
dyaOa iv
elptjinj, ets
Tracr/jy
Tciv iiKTovvTciv
rjfjiav.
77/i.ay
a/xapriaj
kcli
to.
dWa
8ia^r]p,aTa
to (TKeTra(TdqvaL
ra
naibia-Kciu,
Karevdwov
^pax'iovi
jj/xa? ttj
aov
x^'P' ^^
^".7
xpaTaia
ddiKas.
19
HEBKEW TEXT
OF THE
^y
DnnD
us
l3^^n
dc' ^y
ns
i^xn D*D>jn ^3
n^^^yc'
ij"?
*o^
"
PDp^tti
nipon nostr
"py
Dt:''?
imv
n^i:"?
^^n
nx nnvon
n-ioc>
niLJ''? '?'?n'?
wn
ni2tob
nmn"?
ijs^^'ini
onoixi nns oys nnrnn nx j^a^po or ^23 lypni lynni lypn nnron
xmi
ny^trim
'jx x:
^jx 'dix
"WDV^
HD^n
'n
r]'i'2n
mv
ynjj>
't
x: ny^E'in
nnTDn nx
pEJ^i^i
"
X3X X3
nvn inix
I'^tii'^pj^
pis
dhid
x^he^
bn
nt:'
ny^c'in
'>
na
X3X
X3 nyt'ini xini
n-^'^
31D Dvn mbi:^' nonn
D^ot'n jo
mm pxi dtidh
b 'QIX1 HDon ^y
nx njinn
pjx
nni3D
3E>^
>E;'i'?t^'3
^y 1^0
i'pisj^
D'piy'?
or!? Tti'
d^c'x x*?
\r\:
fix
pxB' i^n
'oix na^py
Dn^'m
pns
xn^ iTwb
^i&a lobiy
nnson xmpn
^sj^sr
nae^n
'roixn
HD^n
na:;*
;\s*
D^Ji^'^nn
'dix bixij>
V
^n'?
D'm^ni
n^''nn
^n^-^
'i
omp^sxi
x'X n^non
n\!Dn
T'ti'...
^j^'^onn D^yt^in
y-is
(50)
pp;
[v^Nn pns
itosi
ms
na'-D
n^'V
ntj^y
insoit:
'?:?'
UN
^^
Knpn ^nns
s'?
nn^n ns
"
nos
N'-n inn'-n ab ib
k'?k'
WK
nnn*j nno
pin ;n"?
pa
ids nninn
ns
pivjn
D'-soq "phj
niVD \n2
IpTja
nnya
'
I^j^'ne
"?
my
'i?
5n
i?y eis
nivo ]na
I'' ''JD
*nKi
on hk'd ny
ioxm
ny-is
*:''NC'
n''"'n
y^n
nois
d no 'nniN Dnx^'
niti'
"p^j-irDn
po'po
'3E^
l'^'
bnj
D^vn
ppyc:' n3j
nipTi mtj'
njr^n^
pWnm
Ditr>n
[:
lie'
nn"?
tsd
nip-i^
djidhi
pa
min^
six
'oin
Dmx
dn
i3t3':ps
dsc^ nyn
nsi
}'?yo'?o '?:^'ion
np'?K'2i
n"?
nn
p*? i-idn'
pa c^c?
ns panis DnsB>
'?in:^'^
ns rh^h
KOD-D
\)t^iO p*^3
n^n"?
pti'
nnron
-i
^cj'nv^
i^ipn
n^ i:\xc "s
pn nrh^ nt3^am
-iry^
^jn
n'"'n
'nix Kin nn
i"?'
nny pni
ijn D"''?nip
Dt^'n
xod^o
p'hi'\
nyhv
D''K'"nD
tioni
ni:;'3
ns rnnia
ynK'K x's
"
13''N
i-iNn
" 3'?^'^
"lox
)n
NnxtJ'
n''''n
^riDfc^ni
moni
^'^Ti 'yxc'
*k'-iicj'
pn
ib"'X
"
pn mt3i'?Qpni
ncD T'snan
man
b^
-ivpn"?
pm psK'i
nB'!?:^'
p-ivpjn
13''Nl^'
'?3
p-ion nia^bm
anss
^obip
^B'-iib^
ninyni pca^
im D^nan
nn
]'h)2''\i^
paiDVo n^i
h\y py'pioi
i^t;t30
bixn
mpi
pB' ^3
D-inaD
nyanx
p^tnitf'i
pn
mrh
piiK' nx na'pni
T
b
pi nivn iy nnms
nuD
nriB'Dn
v:n
D-osni
nW ny
nDis
inn
inx
;ni^*o
HTayn
Dnxa
Klip Kinu'
iny* npiaai
nyK'ai paai::'
onx
s<a
^3
'^^t^'n
i'?"'Si
ons
ojjn
anya 'nnix
n^isV
D^ntJ^
"inao n^t^a
nnry
ny
r^js^ DTiti'
Tn
'D*
nnvo
nanx nnx
Kan^ n^n
^0^
xnip
KX>
^x ira dx
"lab
n^K'oi
Dnv pnxjo
nuan
DX
dn inna
'<n innt:^
nana
nnp!?
^xtj'n 13^n
"
)^
"inxv di^
ns
niarn lyo^
'3ti'
(p^3)
^^'<
n^'nne'
^a D^^n
"n^e^on niD*
^n
f\
nxn(\n
\n
i'?>x
dx
n^nib
'3S)
fi
>jsd
^xitJ'
D^pnsai
nnxn ^3
di^k' a^K'Di
(54)
nnv
n^:^
xi;*
mnn^ ^SB'n
pa >jx >in
ndit
yn
nvp^ ^Kc>n
ii-)p^n ;t
"-320 a'-c'ci
nana pa DV"isn pa
rr-a
x^ nrj D^yas'
fpisni
yiOK'
n^n
nninn
mina
laaK'a
nos: no"?
"an
m'pt^^a)
"
;^
^^Dti'
noK
do^d
nicy!?
"pnoiy nnx
'XK^n
ni!?^^a
K''?:i'a
'Kt^ n-'a
"^
i3^s
^ncso
]>-\)p
ny jma'? n'pan pa
*vy ^njaoi
('jd)d
ny
nicy
'
n^a impai
!?'?n
noK
jidio n
nx
nn*"'n
"lys
nox hd^ p dx
'nnis
!?3
pn
nnnn
nnx
nnp"?
nnnti'a yet;'
yiii'v
iinx
)h
n'^yc'
ons
|ni(p
^n''Dni
"inna
it:''
nicy
n^a^E^'o
"
in^i'n
D'''?3Njn
ny nix
\-\p'')
on"?
p>n-\rh
n'-Dsn n"?
pnna
in3"?ai 'jc'
rjiD
"'^'^'^ '^^'^i'
n^an pa
n p"?^
niys' c^ti'
p:i>
'jtr
dv"?
Dnxn ns
nry>"7S
nnpn
D'-n'^n
mioc^'Kn
n:ic's-in
dk
n'?y n!?
nns-'Si
n^''3xi
nan
itv^'px t
n^pi nno
ni^nia
isn:^' nL"j;D
liny
intj'n
j^'-'-n
U'pi^
ntJ'iSn
^:)tri
nx
y^jm
x^ ix^ dxi
txd
niaan *osd
nan
^xit?'
<,
"no
n'O'f^
Sur.
IV.
p, in
MS.
D*p-l3
nSDD
Sur. IV.
p. in
MS.
n3DD
D'pns
292
1316
niynK'
106 a
322
136 a
nviv
107
Ilia
364
1406
mr mny
157
117 a
409
143 6
nnN
207
123 a
11
imnjD
269
129 a
nnD
148 a
492
nv-iin
^d|
Sur.
V.
p. in
MS.
D'plS
iii^yn Nnxn)
L(s-inn K3N1)
niD
:>
Sur. V.
riDDO
ri>w
30
p. in
MS.
D*pns
n2D0
236
179 a
ninna
149 6
14
D*n2r
266
1826
rh'HD
65
156a
13
nimD
323
185 a
nn^D
114
163 a
12
284
188 a
n^Dn
155
168a
383
191a
D^:p
192
173 a
D^any
218
1766
mion
\'h)r\
n'O'm
nni33
nnnto nno
Sur. VI.
p. in
MS.
D^pnB
n3DD
Sur. VI.
p. in
MS.
D*p1S
nam
389
2366
10
m3
15
192a
30
nh2
427
2406
n"'T:i'3!D
146
206 a
18
niVns
450
2436
cnt
213
2146
14
D^VJ3
469
2456
DV ^nD
269
2216
12
ma
480
247 a
nn^
313
227 a
10
nnntJ
232 a
10
mipD
492
249 a
Annexed
rvpy
356
MS. Additional
470.
<53)
3wing
the
S.
MISIINAIl,
and
the
ill
title
the
of
each
edition
of Sux'cnhuis (1G98
1703)
D^p'HS according
its
positions
its
in
that
respectively.
D^pT niD
Sur.
I.
p. in
MS.
DV"13
naDD
Sur.
I.
p. in
MS.
D>pn9
HDDO
263
22a
245
256
289
276
306
320
la
niann
-iij'ytD
37
36
HK^Q
n^n
76
7a
^Dn
29 a
rh-w
109
9a
D*K^D
306
Dni3U
155
13 a
10
r\'V''2.^
200
176
11
nionn
pji'NT
n^it:
Sur.
II.
282
p. in
MS.
586
naro
"no
Sur.
nv^i
11.
p. in
MS.
D'pna
riDDD
32 6
24
nntj'
pnn^y
300
GO 6
c'xi
78
396
10
355
626
nvayn
134
446
10
HDS
387
65 a
n'p^jD
206
49 a
DniQ-'D
413
67 a
nj^an
176
52 6
D^^tiK'
403
68 a
^pt^D
259
56 a
HDID
Sur.
III.
p. in
MS.
D-plB
n:::'n
Sur.
riDDD
III.
p. in
MS.
nar^i
322
94 a
pti^J
69 a
16
D^K'3
359
986
j^K^n^p
56
776
13
nmriD
178
1006
104
846
11
Dm:
146
90 a
-crj
noid'
(52)
'li^^
ny
'"<
i^^";
iK'ip Su:j
pi3
^x
cx^n^^
i^m
'?i^nD'*
pxi
c*2:tj'
noip
^pa
'^^
ip-i^
paS
pn
"^
"itoxiB'
nilgai
(31)
pis
^^'^'
*iSi
cmnx
inx pip
pjD nnin
D\!:^^
TKD
Dins "jnn
^N*?
DmzN
"22
psi
jin3
D'jop
in-)p:5'j
on?p
'J
ncan
D'2*:p
tJ^r
psi
|":p
^xi:;'* irD"*
pT
5i?3
r:!i
3i-53
lais
fii
npnXD
^'ono
Nin-j*
idi'?
DX'innn npn
inn xnpon
UDP? i"d
"ps
nxiana
p-ins pi
53f>
.^''^i)
D'^'^p? in
np'pin
cmnx m'Vs m
xip
':i
Myb
vij^Jti
D'o:;*
D-)36i
apy^i
"'
f'7)3';r'3i
d"ji
pn^-'
n\-i2T
d'j's
n^t*''?:;'
min
n^is
Ov"^)
x"2x
.lif"?
oipri pjp
o"3D-)5
^:xi
min-j*
.n":p
hpps bzb
pnrpn
-i^ix
max ina
pxi
**
i)"i
xn'^zom nson-j'
.nr-cn
i": irf")
DmnwS
]'::?3i
nrj* D'pi'pn
n,!:
D'ppp) 7ip5r?
nnx
jp^fisi
D^r^p
p,t:
nyms
?"? q7
(^''i?
n^n^T
'^''
-j^^rp
n^nnn
'7
""^
Sxntr*
;*:p
^j:p
n^:^^s-l
"inn-a^i
nni" '?stj" la
nnx
nn^s*
\"l*:ptt^
\t:':?iyi
nn
':n
n*n
na^nn d^3
"i,*:wsn
Add. 6G7
rr!':p? rrii
rp")j
nip i^m
vSyS/t:
D\t::r
trnpon
pp
-fn^s
]nNn
pp
yy^p
;v^j?
iHiS
D^y:jp <n:^^!:^
ainan loxu'
mpE'
ima
[iM OTD
DTP? P:pn3
n"2pn
n:p'j^
Dmax
DnilNl
i<^x
C'pip??
'7
fi'3Pi '7 ?I
^K'^ pn5
pni
D^D^y^*!
nK'n
"^pfipS
D7ip V
'7pn iDnP3
n'ijf^
py
ft;T-)3
pni'
'f>3i?
n):i)tD
fiii
o^n?
*dv
ipfii
tk
fiiw
N-'jn
.vipf'i
h'vhi::
f^hf^
'p53i
]?m
6ppp
]3
'pv
'i
yyj qip3
fi'Dpi?
]':i;
"i3
r)if"3P
P';:p 't
no
^p^d dp p^?P
h2
;ni:
nns ds
h"ti
i:>
'p 3113
pf"-)
fiipD
pif"3n
pi6'3P jppi
}^sn 'n
jns
cy^p
ivf^w rif"3P
'n
'i ]::;
(]ip3
;'13
**
fi"j3
pIPP pT
f'"j3
^jni
6"p
D'piP??
'3
"^
"lf'3U"
'^^
ns
nnni DHD
D*ii
**
an^inn rrnxsn
n^Dixi
^hj2 *D n;t:nn
:
D^3n
I222ti'
ntJ^ini
ninD vipT
nn^
n^nSn
n:i:ii
"12:1x1
n^isni
o^S^ii^m
(48)
npn^
^)iJ2T\
:
nn^tJ^
^^:1^s*1
rw
"ji-in
DOpi
Dninx*
^rin niN*n^
py^:^ *ni
ny^^iti^n
nijp
"]n"T
n^ipi
pxn
niino
n^^^i
t3iy2:n
p^D^n rh^p^
pnnD
1:1^x1
nvnnn
ninriinn
n^sj'
vnn?
HiS
nn*i
n^
iri
b'j;
fc^^nD
;
nnnron nnxs^i
t<np2:i
ni^^n Dn^2:Snn
toiy2:n
inS
nnn
:ini5<
D^ij^a
DP3
'iP^D D'-)PP
n^i'^n
Sj;
DM p"7p31
n^nij
r2n^
pnnn):2i
nxninn
yx^itr n^^2:"i
^^^ n^:ix
.(d^j7?
ntJ'^noi
K^ntJ^
]';33)
^sd
.ns-iinn
D3non
vdej'
n^
d^jo n^i
.pioy"?
niin nSnJi
001D D'Plip
'13
(47)
"pat^
.pN
i-nn
.nnan ins
o"y nci^ni
D^n
.niD^nn
t|^Dito*i
n nmx
^p kk^ij
mj^h
nnitD
i2:vj;S
ni^Dn
i^nn d^
n^^t^n h:^
n^^iyS D^^n
pmn
:iint<
kSi
d^:id
onnx:
tD^y2:i
:ii:iyn
nn
.onan
nt<
p|dS iynDX:i
DJi'n
^iDt^'n
D^ipx^n
inix:Snn
n^ix
n:itJ^
n^ix^tj^i
:i^d
innix
Sy n^^yibi niDT
n:)D
^Dnm
pnpni d^ddh
Dn:in
tD*iym
D^pnxn
iSxi
nx:\sn
nj^n^i
bisSsi
-ii^Snn
.ns^na
mob
-iDixni bsiK'^D
nh
D*
pifip^jn
.n3c^13
sjin i:ni
n^K'oi
pya
inyioK'
nx
pbnbn^ ny^i^b
i6^ TOD
^ni)r\
^x
hj^)^
*niin
d:d^
^nnx
nibi nin
]'H)
^nni
nib
nninni n^nn
D^p
i:n
:iniS
npS
^n
nin:3
nj^^c
jn^^ 1^
n^iDi
md::
n^:KJt:^
mm
xSk
iniyn
;^m pvsn
^^ni
^''^i
^nxB'
T"*^^
'^yi
nnjrn
'^^^ -^^^
^'"^
n
nnv ninn nibnn Sxi ^2:^vS
inittS^
tJ^xii
:ninS2:n
ninbntj^
pi
nSi:; tj^pnn
Dinntt Sn:i
^nnni
mm
n:3rtnn
nnv
'i^'iS
u:rh^^
n^n:i
nosn
n'?n fiiPJ
Add. 667
'"231 .]o:p Pt
*h)f^)
snn
p"7 -jpps
1133
''PI
"i"?
Add. 667
tJ'
(nK>y
i'tk'
>"22)
"pxi
f>"j
'"p
"*
^
^
nnsn
n^:)pj
ipy Nina>
nip?
'j
npp
nna n!fv
r\rhr\)
ntJ^y^D
Sj<
ni
h)p
n^\s*i
pDiysr
'J2
ihi< \n)r\
pty -TQD 11
^Jtr
^x
tj^i^^<
':'sn^nN*^
nnxi nr^xi^
nn^n
Dnm
*iS i^Ntr
SN^':>ni^")
^n^
'^'^^
idS
os)
nns
im
ninn sipn
^'r'j^
'^^^
''^'^^
nn
xSni
xSx
'2^
ik
^yn^^i '>>hii
^inp
|ipnD"ij N'ln
nnx piDs
in
i^^^^d
Dnm
nnx nin
b^
jfi^
nnx
pjiTj
^ipj
piD3 ix
*)P in^b
f>i
pip 7D
"13
(45)
v'p
Dnm
n'phi
^pp
ini
'iji':'x
fi"p3
iN'j'y fi"j
iyn*i
i^
^ixnp nn'?!
':'3n^nxD
15<
"^^^"^
nni
*]S;b
fisi DT3
i'?"'Bt<
'<s|s:3
^xna^^
isiSn*
Dnm
hp
nnn
^''^'^
x':'B^
"lyn^Di
nns niN
Tin
n5^j<
=mttn
:n:iS
nn n^x
ytrin^
niDi ns^
oytD
fi"p3
"
'^
minn
DnmS
Nipj
iS
n^iT
r\J2^h
xin
nn
nnini pD^yn Sd
D':'iyn
I'^n
nx na^z: nvnnn n
innti^jDtoi
nxin
innip^i ^^bn^
inpnn2:i
n^j'yj^
vo^o nx pDi3
ntt1^5
nnnn nx
px^i
mT\
u^st:' ('"p
nsj'*
ni
3"p
':?)
"I'pini
(44)
nnnn
nin.s
r\t2^J2
yi
Dip!:n
o':?
j^^^^i
"Qjnon
pip
*nn
i^x^:
S^s?^
nn*i
in::^nS22i
n^::y
'33
n^pm
^
j-yoD 6":
i3;nn 6";
nsDin
T\5irh
nn^y
ni^i'?
ncj'N
nj2:2r
D^pn^<
(x-in:^
jn
n:h
f-";)
nito'r'nS
U'^hii^
D2PP
npfi ^''pfii
.3":? "131
xnpob
':f>
d:t
tj'on
u.?)
^^n
t)n^b DntJ^
idkoi 33 J3
iosd my
^36 pdppp
.iti'iTsn 3":
n^K^y
fiip
N^fo:
"ioko ^'n
nrn na
u'6
^npoynn nDx^on
'1
p
p
p*7PD
ijhk^
pfP
nio^'pK''? Di^
D^tot^n^^
'l^Di
ni nS^nn
:
ni^n
Y^x
p\n ni^yS
nxD
nia --"isni
ni ^isn
r^^
n'n:ix nnjnc
:i
D\tii3
disS nibix
ninx
^^:33^tt p^"i
n;bix in
n^n:n ^n^3
:i5
xS niDi ^ni
xn
xri
.jfi^S
1D3PDi '"3
qf"!
n':'Dn
'13
'P
]'PP7;? DnPPw"> 5^
'D
^71
|ivi \n*
.p'PlJ 3? "
J1'5jj6 ]1Di3
nm
(42)
6"j
Dn9
^
'
ninx
'^'^n pis
nitJ'p
Dp::>
yiD
i5
i?D")S
fiifi
D"p5 Myti
03
]';i?
not:
-jjipi
]'f'D
yivb
onp nn?
Dy!?n
D'lPD? 3n3D
imvi
\'^^n\'<
py p
6"p3 ^
]':u fiipj
oa T^tnD
ipf>
p:p
'
tjoj?
f'P'P3
D3n''3
7D
1:2 tJ^^CJ^
;-unv
ppp
3"niy^
f4l)
0^53
nnji' -i^n
p'?ni3i
in
f^Di::?
'J3
jOUl
pcnvi
nrn o'piyn
0^373
d'3id
6D'")3
qou
|'''?dik
f'"j3
f>"j
D?-J36
"
]):m nnnx
it
nni
^^DD^
npiSnD
J
K^bnx:n
^D^2:s:^
nnSn
d^;!:2J^
n*
ni:^h
it
K^ne^ npiSriD Ss
u'W
p^i
^t<
it
S:)i
nnns ^-n
&<^nt5^
\s
it
r\y^m ^SSm
u\yb
D^nn nx
n^TXsn
Sd
T"D
IT
imy
t^NnK'* riK
K^onn
"ib>ki
stsn
itj's 1223
(40)
qpT^
^h:i)^
mp
nym^ nxon ^y
**
f>"j3
fi''^
'::^
^i^n
Dnni<
np
lyy
Dnn^^
nt5^iy
lin^ ^Sxi
in^
lin^
nS
*ini
Dnnx
p^
<bx")
lyxi -|Sin
nn
tj^'nnzin
d^^d;^
tnSon
^WJ2
^^1ntJ^
n^^^^ nSbii
nm
Ston
fi":)
nB^yo
idej'
ppi5pr? yiv
i^in
^riS^nn
iD\3)
np
m^
li^y
'Hx^^^ixd
pi
^nn^x:
^^n n^n
n^^ jsid
Srin
n^^Sn ^'d^
x^intj^
:isd nsii
^<^n^ ns:
Dnwn
^nh)v^ nSbi
i3"'Ni
ynn5<
VI
nn^a
run
-^Sx
^:in"i:ii
na'iy
f"?
nyx nn-n
in 'in ]p
Piif"
r>vf^
n^iSn
P7P pipp ^
P3P6p
(39)
1r^<t5'1
]01?5
07ip
niD
^^Scj^
"iStJ'i
nt^p nriK^n
ycj^n
ytrn
^S^*i
^Ssj^
nosn
5{:i^
^'n2:\s
nsj'pi
^^in^b
Dn^toSnn
n^^pi yiDtJ^S
h^ pxn
n)y\
u\v^h
nn^D pit^
n^p n^Dsni
"n^^r
i<>{^
]ipi
)Vi)
i?'Cf i^D'i
f'i?'^
(38)
nr
niS
3^3 hzb
.tvi:^?
phn
onpp?
h^ h^) ih^
n^^irn
'iP5
tj^^i
ni^iS
'<yiifc<
inx:;^^
Dy ^'h^
^StJ^
^"^ "^^
'^'f2n
n*inj<
n)y^^
Syi
nviy nSj
^N^iXDi n^y^iK^n
nyiin
^ifix:
O10P
5i?i
.!"'
'p
Sy*i
:i"p
'i7
pns
nni
mnj; Sy
D^3D
n^y^itr
nniDH
P'ij:fi ]1D53
Diij -)33
ry
(':i;d
]V3 jo^p
oS^iyS ^il
nhy
^^^^cixdii
'13
n-ie^yn
nn^s
^yi '13
'PP7p?
hni
'l?
PI
^^s;^
i-in
n^p2^
fi"^
P1P73
moDP?
pup? noni
niny
(S7)
n^nn nni
Sy
^fy]i<)
xS
"iDUx v^i^
[n^fpD
xn
^^^
nx: Sj;
nni^^n S^r
jnnx
S^ lyn n^yS
"Xi n^^'r'ij S^ ip
xStr
ncn
5fij3")3f' '"-)i
jDips
nuf>
piw
HD^HD
npp3
i^c^Di
nbnn na
invpoi D-inyn |n^'p
'"o3
If
r^DP
rpi:j
v*^;?i
pya
bit^'-'?
'n'^aj; ^sia
p^p^i P'^^y^
D^yntr
[n^pD^i
nx3
fiDi:?
n3^n3
'?Kit:>
n''^!?3
"py
.poni noDnn
fi^Di^ VfiitJ'
pxn
h^ nyi
p-i
':'yi
n^c'Di pjys
nync'
D^i^yn
i6^) xn n^^^n
"^nvptr n^n^s
psrxn
^pw^tj'
'n':'n h^'^^h
dhpp? 3n3
53fi
Snni irxi
n2::i
P"i:pp
'^^n:!^ ^^ ^isS
y^rh
SwSi^j^
nyn pntj^y^
nibina
:
^n^^nn li^^
itJ'y!?
n':h
Wik' 6"^
tb>i
nxa miva
ni:y-ii3
StJ^i
3'P3
^Kit:'
f>"i
'
nm wv^^
(36)
kS^
Dn^ni
D^jsn
i^n^
i6)
p'^ri
nn:3^ni nnini
nto^ni
n^DSJ^ni
t)^<
Dnnn DDnn
on^v^
nyiits^i
P3
Opp
WDP Opp
f>PV7
"^pfi
]ipi
nnn nn^:
nnK'
Dnp6 o'od dm
Pip
k^i
'13
myn
'3 jfi^S
n^^m
(J5)
^si
D^w
.D^'-nnDon
D13D D'
h^ cs
6"^
jfio
D^K'nn 6";
qpij pifippop
in i^si in^^a^n
"
dVij3 "110X3 6"i
i^j^yn
Dnnn np^y
"dS^i:!!
fipp p")p3
I2h^)i'h pSiyK'3
pip
nnxs^iy
np
^i
x^^2::j
irn Dnnl^^
^')
mc'oti'n
p:^^
op;n ni7p3
fii)
Dm ^11:1
Dnis^n
ni-i^ ^yx
i<S^
W)
3n3
<]pij f'"j3
n^ii^yn f>"j
"^
"
^
'
'3
dm
Dnnnx
nD:)n:i
niiVDi
nnts^j;
n
:
D^n
d^d:i
nic^j?
j^^nn
m^D
nc^y
M pjDP
ICryj
3'P5 O'lPD?
]nMP3
i55p
Dn37
'rfiin
Son onpop
f>"3
(]7
fipV
Pip3i
nijj'yi 6",)
P0DP3
)t)iy
(34)
"^
Dis
^^^Jbn
D^ytJ'nn
nib
:
n:De^
ps^n^ xSx
in^':'^
nnxixa
D^Si^
"I^ix
U'S^ ^n^^
nn)bxD
nn^p
nz:D
n^::)
yninS ni
yninS
nyi
Dn^^^
Dnn!l^< nyi
n^D
vjeb
(33)
pixzsc^
nyi)h
nnn
nn^y
nnn
nn^^y
ppp
t\s2i b"i
ni3N
"[nn:)
^'i^^:
Syi
^isS
^n
"V^'^l
nn^
pn^ni in
pis
^nn:: Syi
[n^':'
f^DIT
nni<
^ni3
'^s;^
n^^:
nnx
n nriN D"yi
(32)
-iSi:j
no nnx
3"yi -jipp
n7p3 j"'
Ip:3p
in
6J^^
l^^<^^c1)b
cj^^tj^
"iinnni
n^n
nixnni
r\^^or\
n^vn
^xintJ^
^V"fin'^"^
xS
"pn^n
xnntJ^
'sh SnriLr
'ID
ym
l'?"'SK JCr^l
yninSi
pnn
nSij;
x':'
"iSt?^
jK'"'
^^)^ nspn
nnh'Ti
nix:':'
xS
n^:1^^
ntj^^S
n^n
'^tt1^^
j?'"'''^^
v^s':'
P^ n'?0 ]i?5
]'i<^
m)^
'\nh n^ny
i"M .TNO
^2-1 fi^'i
nyn Nin
.pn"? ;ipp
)h^
(31)
P"'''^
Snnts^
in"? :i"m
"^
^<1^
V^'^
nvrh
(5<in "inaj
'^'i
'?3nc^
;n
f"".)
in^^ f""^
1PP
6"^ ^
f)"p3
"
^
"
nnx
/!:iT
'V'y^ P"i3
V'<
iSt^^rinni
n2:trn Sj<
h^:i
"[in^it^
[pi
ppn
itoix
n;bSni tynn
y:
Sn")?:^^
Sy nninD vnS
n"3
n^Sn
)r\y^
]''
nh)^:!
D'1
'bP
^Snnn
n^i^5
n^\^m n^np
D^a:iy
1DX v'pyo
filPD 1P3
n^n
pIPPP
v^'-ya
Df>
'D
j?-ii
^''
n^n
in r\^h
nsi^ |s
mp^n
"n
n^sSni
3)12 ^
onppc
D'p"nPP P:DPP
r5w
'13 J
(30)
^dv
3'nD
^p
rn^n^
tr\s*
D^i:3y h:i)i6
S:d\s':'
n'-K'ni
ns:D
'1
')PD3
-13
fi
J T
=D-ixn Sn DISC'S
nnip
S^
n^^{
Dnpo nn
nytJ^
nzDix t^'in
^^n
-^n^n^ i
^7:])^
nrn
D^ip
n":i
iS
"inSpS"^ ny&j^i
in22EJ^
im^nS
nytrin
liDnin Sxi
hm^n
hi<)
mj
nytj^n
nnonDn lovy
(Add. 667 pipr?)
'r:p '"33 ]2
;pnn(i) fi":
o> f>D^:p
top
"^
>ynn pis
mn^<
yn:J2iif
'xiinj
naipnn n''D3n
'i
^3''y
iDti>
t-ko
i^npj
kihij'
noS
o"n
iDtr "iny
'\'d^
'Ji
D^p^v h^
piD''''tt f>":
"
sip3
^J2)]
nn id^x
ity'px 'i
hd*?"!
1DK> n''Dn3
loe^
"I
mn^
n''^
'S-iin:
N^N
"^
nnsi
i^'
'i n'?^^
idej^
id::' --sninj
6"^
''
ah)
^S
^n^p n^^^
njj^iyn
ni^^tt
n^:l^^
npy^
nry^S
1W
6"J3 ^
11333 qp">3
yioiJ> ]3
ppPP
]'3
]'fil
^13P^
qn3
p'p
f>5
pi
'p5
'2
(I'ptj's
f"",))
fi''^^
"i
WW
"^
lovy niiDD
(^3
/'ii dpo'3
inf'Pi D^f'V bo
(27)
mix
ij;!:XD
p"ii3
pis
^y^i"i
pn p
i^:vy
xzD^iT
nDi Sxy^^tr^ i
'<^t5^inn
1"*
1S1D
^Jiy;^
niinn
^n^nni nnini
^S
tj'"'
minn
nx uyj^n Si
piDj;i
^poy
^nS:on
bj;^:
dki
(26)
^in
d-ij<
"1^1^<
-ix:i
Si
^pnv
txx:
^:isi
-n
"i
nn Ss^
n^:i
^m p
^ynn pis
ninK
'^y
n^Sn
:
x:inn trx:n^x
ninin
i;'fii
Sj?
ni
*i;bix
SSihd
SSn n^n
iS5i:i
n-iinn
'd
nisryb^
nx
]i3ip pf
nAh)
p^
"i:)i
'31
I'f"
nvnnn
n'?'?i
niob'?
niDPi Dp3P
dhpop rip
'p5
"^
'
'
(25)
S:)i
'^''^i?
PP"ppp IPPSP
DJ^hh
^S:)xS D^nip
hhr\j2r\
'iifii
n^i
n^i^hb
if^hh)
niriN*
'T'21
pns
x^^t
ni^^D
nDsrtJ^
nn^ny
nn^riyi
nnni:i
i-'SsD
pt^tj^
*nn
"im
hi^)
"|S
D1.S
px^
S^S
nj?ti^
Ti
ni^^s
nmy
ninu
r\yy;
n*i^^,!2Sj^
ni^^n
n^tJ'i
pxtj^
j<*in
"ot
'^dS
^nii^n
:ijii2J'
nnj^ nS:i^
nnm
"i:ix:/t:
ppsi
fi"j
"'
ninK
n^:i
pp^DDJb
n^Ji^yS
^ynn pi^
^iD1T
n^D Sy ixdSh
it^hh)
j^:inn tr^^n^j^
ni
"IX:^^<
SSn n^n
pp^Don
o'fii
rx
l^'P")^
'2P
'"t5")i
'D
"|:)i
px:
]i3i? Pt
'iif")
(25)
npp f'i2
*^
wp
'^''^i?
1PP3P
D*nnp
^S:d5<S
Dvprv
'Ji
Dt^hb n^i
131
nn
I'fi
i'?'?i
n)D];i
dhpop pip
,i"m 'i3 61?
Drhh
Dp3P
'p5
""
'
y:ii pis
n^riN*
n*d^t
n1^:D
n^tj'^
nn^ny
nnii:i
rrn^nyi
t
rSst) ^nn ^i
pi^25^
"im
"|S
Di.^^
pxi
SdS
nj;^^
ti
t\)^^
nmy
rm):\
pxtr diwS
r\))i!2^
"|S
ptJ^
t^in
"in ^dS
-^n^n hh'n^
rib inxi
:^y)^
f>ii
nnx
nnm
nS:i:i
lix:^
ppsi
"^
nt*
V'ln pns)
^Qnj*
S:)2D
D^^{ y\i<
ftsSn
nib
Don
>^N*in
5;^:i^
Y^::
7V
fii:
61?
nnpp
y^
i:ihj2
ipSnn n2:^n
'^itj^
'^2:1^<
*i<
inni
"i^^j;
rnpfip pv:dp3i
P3-)W
'Ji
'h)
'3
P13PP ipipp:
(23)
]3
StJ^i;!:^
^^1n
jfis
''
^<2:1T
xin nr
'itr
^D
ni
\r]m
T^i^y
Wi)
n?
^t?
"iin:iD
^x
f^"i
**
'3 :i"5 ^
Qh)vh f'3
intt:Dnt5
D^::iitt
p p mj
i5i:i
D^rp
^nnsi
"Qi^n
nmn
hnt
k'pi
pipp
^nr bi d^
vh) 3Kn*
n"?
(^i'?s)
m^a
^^^1
^int^ vya
nKTi
x!?i
^nnin
'jb>
^a
nxT'
D3PP DD DPU
0"V
NDDn (ni
:i"p
fi''^)
y'ii
:"3
's>
mo nnx
mm
^fiDD
pi"i:iu
ov
piUUP
]iDi3 ''9
7i;7
s'^fiv
(anno
niK'yD
h"i "
W") tipnz
"
'
"jnup
pp-)j
(22)
pi nDn
pK
n"?! vji'iB^
na
D-)1PP1
*^
nn!?D
loipoD inix
'jb'
njtj'ii
ntyS
L^^D^
^nxDon
nait^
n^:j'
[S^nS
vsjysj'
^D^Di^/t:
Sy inDUini innpiv^
o^:ifi
pts>
niix
jnin^ pK:i:m
n^nn
px
p^5
'^hii^
'<nii'?i
p^
DK niin pK
n^^n
r\t2D
n^m
x:a
Dw^
n^npy
D13
D^<
j\^
p^
p^
np
^^
T^
T'^
px n^^n px nx
:
pt^
nnin
t"3
t^in
r\f2h
nnnxn
n^n
n2:i
^rj
t<in
^^'^^
t'^'^'^
')pj3
inyiD
(Add. 607)
nmn
|^k
ps nyn
d
]^x
'i:p
'"231
nmn
px
dx rwn px
ii
fi":
nnn jnnno
p^dp 5d Pnpfip
min px dx
nj^n
mm
;^x
px ds nrn
")7p
qippj
ps im
|^x
nx-i>
f>":
^''ps
px dn
pN'
>Db5v
dx nsn^ px
min pK np px dx nop
nx2 i"i
"
(2.)
poyiD
f)":
'
'
nnx
'^h^ Dns
n^npy
:i"5
T\yn
n^i^n^
'd'^ip
in^
iniij;n
'?:)ni
'^i^
pni
nrh
^Sd
vs^pj^r
ed^ji
in^ ^^Sd
j^nnj
Nnnj
:
^ti)pt2h
dh':?
i^'nu
|n^:it:^
nrh
h^ity'
pn^in
np^
r\yn
n^^n^
^^
n^ini
n^^ni
n^toni
\'y^n
nyn^ii
D^yn
h^i^'
^nh)v^
'li^
ns^^
h:iri
n":j
'ntj'ns
mi^2:ni
"nnins Dpisni
Pj^px:
*:i:jnni
nn^ns
nn
i^'iP
n^n Kin
ni:inn D^^nn
nop
fi":3
**
7pp
fi";3
=^
opf>
")PP31
jfio
men
.ntryon
nn
'''?3
f>"i
"
(20)
6":
""
^a"?
nsfyion i"y
nins
b^ ^y
niptt"?
]i>pii
.HK^yon
nj:\^
f'o
sV him
nons mivDi
6"^
i"')
nx
pS^:i-iD
pn^
hiSdi
t^^isn
nD"l^<
nn^py
"nn
n^n
t^in
>:)
':i^
Dn n^in
Nii:ty
^Q^^f^
1)521^<
v'i)
(m^ny
nDiK
n-in
p];7)j 65
.(D^n'pK
IDB' l5 nP^JI P3
in^
fi^D
p"P) Dnxn
D^V2
Ni33t^)
7U ip5i3
nx
ntry D^n^s
(:fi-)pp
i"?
f'-)3:D
twd:
n-T-n^
p:dp ip D';iD
^''j
miDo
6"j
D^vn
-tQif'
^
^
II
ion onxa
fi-)pPPP
msn
]"i;) ")"p7fii
If
m
p:p
inaDHj:
ints^n
D^nn/t:
vtJ^vttty
Sd '^v^
n^n
xin
V'D
^li^:^:
nn"i:3
nvnnn nn
]\ssr
':5D1
ii2:^n
i:i^:^n
nni:i
nnii
D^p2:n
Dip^:n
ni^ p.s
r'b
pxn
iS
^^:y
]'i^
5p5)
S^
nvD:i:D
'D^nitD
5'iji
]'3
D^^yx:
jfio
]'3
^m
n^n
qoi:
tj^^tr
71U1
(i8)
^s
Sy
ni^ns ah'^
t|X
]f>2
^niinn d^js
qpo
fi"p3
1"*
IT
;t33
D'1
niriD
PI
(Add. G67
DTHSPfip
"13"!
n^o*?;!
rpp
nDiK>n
in:rD nns)
"pd
nm
j"m
i"?
(17)
ni'?n 6"^
))PP3
"'
on^pn 7py
.nsitj'i fi";
dpp
itj'aja pij5
fii?
flip
^
"
'
"
1K"K> ny 6"^
^
px:i
rnD^
px
Sy imi^xi
inp
'^HiS
^'i^
i^*^
^^^
n^s
n'':DTx
pyoK'
pj^p?
7333
ril)
p"'
D'Pi>p3
lU
P'-jf"
PPDP7
fpp3
]P 33")1P
D'3")
filPI
fip
bs
jIDi
DDP p'pil
]60D
'i:>r))
D'3")
nnn'j'
h\i:h
]1Di
7'P'
li
^/tDJ^^I
ii?
ph
I^V
'jnfi
filPD
fPp3 '^TX
SP^Pi MP
pi'P
p71
D':i7fi
]"lDi
{16,
''po
7pf'i f"P
]2) D'3"7
t")5i '"di
'"p3D
p-)1PP
'Sib
O'lPlfi 7133
]1Di
pph
r>")ii
'"Ul
DHpS
PUP
"
f>"j
llf'iv'i
d5o o^ipi
PPP3
pi 6"j
nnn
ob
'onf>
"i
.')Pji
1?PDP7
filPD
'iPD
5"lPP
"'jnx
p5
^P6p
Dnp
7'P'i
''p
px:^
^npy^
nnjc'DD
fnpp
PD-:)b
iS^*5iS
nri
137
flip;)
(:ifi"5PP
iJ3\s*
pTP r'DPPD
'JTfi-)D
-ini?n Nj
5"'1
53f>
")?P3
^Sn^n
|^ii
ib^sx
-in.^
'itj^
iDix Nin
DVD PP9?
pipPP hD
r'Df'"53
"[m
^S^S5<
D^iSi^
'iK'
Tw^
^:Dn
6": *
UT
'"33 ]\iO
5"m UOpSd
D^p^2n
n^^tj^i
p^D3/!:i
^in.:i?:^/p
rani
\sn^
I2r5<
nc^Str
'Jtr
]P1
7'P'
0il3
]V3D
pn
i''n
dtp6p
fii6 7'p'
'fi
p''^^
7'P' ]1Di
PPDP
]1d5
p"3ppD
Ofiipi
'P5
d'pIS
PPP
fPp3 7ip5
inji 137P
d'31 ]iDi3
':
D'3"7
poi 031
Dl")?
flip
iPif> '?37Pi
DSIpl
"IJOS
ninx
^K^'S^ p-is
Nin
^ra
ij^:!:
DipD
ptrv vn^
n^::3
D^nSj<
toi*3jr^
n:i
h^v
ni^S/t:
p"93i
^2?^
cn^yn
D^nS nnpi
Pi:-)37
r]'2pv
-^nriDtJ^n
'iD^
U''?:^'n
p"?
--n^XDn
6"^
j"'
pn^nyD
xnsSn
min nnnn
'^Sw^
q7
('5'
1^22!:
*)
i^pDiyi
':>n*
nnp
p^pr;?
pippin
p:tti
r^io
nm
PiDypp
5"jr
o'nno
mn
Dn^i^n
p^**"
ny:3^
^^^W D1S
r^^""'
''''^^
nnni
<n^^n
n ^spy
pp^''^^
T^^'^'
'^'^^^
""'^^
^'^^
'^
'^^^^
ny
^Vkd
StDi
nin^n
vSy
-ni
DH^i
3tJ^^
rhvt^
niitj^^
nt:^V25^
nnx
'icr
'rh):i
nninn
Sd
n^
ii;::^
ih)
D^nx: ^niT^
nan
nn'-j'-a lt^i
iS:)t<
f)".)
iS^:d
dd dm
'u
minn
rpDiyi
fi''^
**
mm
'u 'P3 ]5p5) jfiD Dn^3"n n^-nt^ 6"; 7iy
pnpf" PVJDr?3
ro
(14)
onnf'
cud
dm Dnroy 6"^ ^
dm
i'?3nb'
6"^
"*
'^'^^
nnxn
^22
;\S/!:
iSsS"!
c*DS-!:n
^yn
^ny^ni
"h^
pntJ^m
n^^i':'
^S-t:
pni^ni
"
nnx
n^ny
]n^S
"|^n nnx
os':'
isbl 6";
rr\>>
^j\sSi
|n
l"y
nnnD.
f)"' "737r)33
6":) n?2n
^:)sS"i
ns^t:D
i^ny
\T\h
yn
nv'pin') (na-i",
^^
flip
-JDP f>"j3
nn
"
"'
(-i2i*)
Dipo"?
fi''^
n"3pn
fi''^
'
"
irc: ]o53
(>3)
"iy'?3
t"i
"^u pis
nii>{
i22\s 'y^
:i^ji^nc^
D^Syisni
^<S
HD
^niin
nnii?:
n:)xS^ni
Di^
^yi xin
Dnin
pN*:ii
^nptr
11^':'^
pnn
|i
n^:nn
nriwS
r^y^n
^in
n^p Dvn
Sj^ni
^^^1
n^sj^ -^S
SwXi
n^ix niyS i
nx:\s*
psitD
ninn n^^ni
ii2::iS
p^nij
y^yn ^nn
^is::
"i^^^y
'i
i:^':'^ijr
nDxS^n
^^^5^
6"^
**
D-)?pr 3n3 ivjy .u"' r^on^ ]r5pi72 in^NbtD bv2 xin pxji 6";
"^
nj?-in Sj?
nmi ion mi
"^rhwzi "13C'
D''Dn
i"?
d'pc"'^'
(12)
'3
Dv :i)m Dips
Syity
r\y^:
vn"
^nn
\r\ymiy
pn
nvnnn nx:tri
n^h
nij
Y^P
'^^i
Sx*i
nii^n
K2:tJ^
^np
n^^n
l'^
-jW::
ntJ^n^
^^^
^'^i^
inSn:ia
py n^ix
nyxtr nnin
T'^'^
yni
y^in^
^ini
"i
ni2:SS ^D^^y
\yw
(II)
inn
f"":
'?':'fina
pnn^ty
nnn
HN*
^1^
N^n
n nniD
n^rix
i^y
d'^st;::
np
"^nn wS^n
ijwn niiSn
'isj^
^xin
it
n/!:\s*
^nn
Dip.'Dn
(10)
^t^
niy^S ^nn
ij!:i
niyS
isni \s^
p^/^si^
\s*
it
pr\^r\'^
Vii^n ni"i^
^m
ytrin^
n^:is*
ni^a
nn^s
^nnit:
"ii
n)t>:i
D^nsno rip
dhS
niy^'r^xi
n/!:wS*
ni
c-f^
n^i^n
-i
n!2N*
'icp ^''^j
nii^
nip nnin
nm
iS
n::D
nip
ito^v'^
SSn^
pinn
nnito
pnv
iS\sn
':'X
p^n
'ov
nil/!:
n^n
ns^cD
nnwS
]r):^^
pnv piS
\s*3T
nnn:ii:
n^iin
n^Dn ^p:Dn
tinman
nn
n^D
ii\s*t5^
"|iy
"^^
ppp nniD
i'pi: d*
i)^bn
06
ni^^x xion
hpi .d"'
^i'?f>
'5
13
'-I
vz)V'
'1
5d 1*36
'9)
^niy^S
py^sj^
DD
dx
ii
Sxini
mro^ ]6o
DD3 V7'pipi
j;c^in^
n\n Nin
btvz^ ity'pN
\b:i
nt
nj:ix
'p ]"i;
"i
niy^Sx piB^
ntrx ^noin
n-nn
^^"^^ni
Diipnin
p
p
D):py\r\
'i)
^dv inn'?v
^pyD
vn Dn^2:Sn ntr^n
)h
p ytrp^
xn ^^y p ^'^^^
'1)
jnn
uhi^
T\:ip
^xdt
'r'lp
Dtr
nito
'i
f>"7p
j"5
*<
j"5
]JPV ]31U
"^
~/
pj^n
Dir
(Tj^
cUr,
xSi
^'^ r\vrh
"J
NT
xfen
nin
hm^n wmi^
n^n
ntti
t\^
t^in
n
nniJb n2:n
D^D2J
dnnj;
nni^
r^^it^
d^dt
fiD^ii
npn>^
nnn^
P"PP S"JP
'''D-;i
yotrnV pip
nniD
nma
nvy
]5p5
nmo
nnna
nnn;::
n^ins^
d^^j^j^^
nni^:
vr^vvv ''pp
i^f"
P13PD:P
^01:3 'P^iP
p
711?
d^b^:i
"n:iw^T
nnnXD
p^'pi
.isidi
pnpi
ODpfii
n3QSB>3^
(^3
nn'tD
nn^D Sn nnnxa
nto^n
"^
P13'P?
xin
ibi^< n^n
nni^:
ninj:
^nn^tr^
f>1?
D*t^3
ntJ'is
1J*i?l
noDn naio
6",)
OHPPP 303
na^tj**
naio
**
^
^
^
"
f>":
(n-iin 6"j)
(8)
D^^n
njinn
*^
"^
yr^
n^nx
nn"ii5<
'^
ja^.
n^^
'
OK' pis
d^w
niDTt^
Dnn
ny
*3i
oy
-ly'?
III
^mi
nai{<
^--^.v-
"'^
n:D y))ii:i
HK^y^tr
p^fi
"|n^:3n
'7b:2^t5'
nx |nn
n:)
.'\.
m^
i^ii^i
Ski
^niD
iiu
ntj^y
^^dd
dv
- :'ipm
nyK':i
laix n^n in
i:i^vi
S^bm
ny ^to^yn
pxn
^jK
n P3'n
pMw
(7)
m^iD
n^y 6"^ ^
"
^^
yt_ -- U_J
-/
h^
pDSJ^
ynv
inD
n^^
i<!i
nnj<
nm
n:ii::
Dnm
j^xi
-^.^,u.ii^^
y'j?
'"03
P"U P3D
miui
Pt
"in
6"^
'ilf>)
"PDI
"
n^Ssj'i ^^Dnoni
^^ ^
]1D53
nosn
no IDP
^"
TSi
'P'fil
nnDsn
n:i:j:)"""
'
w^'^
IDfi
7pf>
^'>X:
'"33
^
py ]i?i 3'P01 ^D1 py j^^ 3'P3
npaJ DD P5DJ
(6)
'"131
ninx
D'^iyn
Dnni
ni;^N*
ncj^Ssj^
ynp
n^jniD
T)"i
DP PP7:?
-59P
r\-:^'ry:>:^'^
hv n^uy
y'i:>nh
lii? o-)37
Snp n^b
pns
\)^ir\
':'x^^2::i
trmD n^ 6":
'''oii
-pf-iri
ppvp?
''93
jn
py^:^?^
pi
^
]3 D'l n^i fi";
336
.d'-jppp
3n3
j^pp
ninx
SnD ne^D
PE^x*! P'13
1"*
ninn
^<ttt:^
Dn^;bSnn
]T\pb)
HD
intrn
vn^^Snjb nn
hi:^
D^nn::
innin
D^^n
D^ynn
n;b"i
'?':'n
nvnnn n nn\^
^^5cyS ^jxtj^ii
'^torin
D^paS iS^n^
yn
iht::p 'f^?''
5i
i)v
ivh)
*n;bx
:i"i
D"3P-)r> 7"5
5"5];
ah
srinX
(4)
xbm
fx dx n^ix n\n
^jx
nriin
^fjiD*
xp
v^iy xS ^dx
]^D^
p7
niS:i
jP'pp
jvSbnx
d^':>25^
n)
'J2
1tt1^<
sjj^nn piipi
xi3)l r^^
*jx
""
"^Dpfii
n'o^H (Dircn
"p)
nnnnn ^xi yn
nn*in^
^Syn
p3p
'HiK'-iS
f'U3!^v"i
3np
-jpfi
':?P
Y^'^^
pinD
npt^S nxiS^
n^six n^y^:^
B^x^nn Sxi
^Snnxn
\sn;t:
min^
^xib
py^tj^i
j::
\n'D^:^:i) D^ya^n:]
n ninx
nDi
.'p
pnnn
vnK^:)')
y:shb
ptj'ib
yrinn
rn
p'pyp?
CD 3P;;?
pD
'ji
ir'f'P? i^i
(3)
^nmn
p^^b^xi
mnnn
K-s^nn ^xi
<]D"i:
T^^^ P^^^
NtotJ'
i':':ip
Sj<i
r'yo.'Sif'D
'''^*
jfi^
nt<
nni
^n^riT
n^y^tJ'
Kits'*!
ipp ohpp?
"T""^
uw
T]:i^h^n
31-53
'
i:"p ^"^"1
nin
i'3
h^p nt^D
ptrxn pns
ni3N*
n2:x 'p^a
iTnn
D"iu
Di?
ntJ'.^^n
:
ntJ'xn
r\n'^
n!:^ni
'r^p
nxsx
intJ^xn
min
w)r]'
nr\f2
ii
h:ip ^Snnxn
I'psp 5'y5
/'m
'\sn!:"i
.T]T-^'i ^'ii
^^^^'^3
]h
f^":2
IDV
ytJ'in*
n':iph
Syi
vtj^^inn
hd^::
nS*in:in
r\'i):i]2r]
"i?:^
n^n
Dns Sips
Sips
y^^in^^
h)i)
xn
niib
'^t^Ss^^
niD^i ^^dd
mnox:
^tJ'i^<S
nninn
nx:^y
pn^^n py2:^o
Sy inn
n^a Sy
nx
mn
r\y\T\
D^i^^n^i
D^tJ^^sr^n
(O
nti^D
D^x^iiS D^ipn
'^n^p idid
nx
Snp
ptJ'JbtJ^^in
\^'i^
':?y
Di:i^Dii<
Dniyi vnn S
Dnii^i vn nS
*n^i
Di3
nh'ivh nbiNJ
K^3D
S":n
*"D
iB'non K'npn
p^'ip^
^^'^''
D'pirn
nK nai
University of Toronto
Library
DO NOT
REMOVE
THE
CARD
FROM
THIS
Acme